The Dangerfield Talisman

By J. J. Connington

The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Dangerfield Talisman
    
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: The Dangerfield Talisman

Author: J. J. Connington

Release date: June 2, 2024 [eBook #73753]

Language: English

Original publication: Boston, MA: Little, Brown, and Company, 1926

Credits: Brian Raiter


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DANGERFIELD TALISMAN ***


The Dangerfield Talisman

by J. J. Connington

published by Little, Brown, and Company (Boston), 1927



Note

The characters, places, and events described in this book are entirely
imaginary and have no connection, either direct or indirect, with any
real persons, places, or events.



Chapter I

“Lucky again, partner,” commented Westenhanger, breaking into Eileen
Cressage’s thoughts as he took up the scoring-block. “That’s game and
rubber, Douglas. Your mind must be wandering.”

Douglas Fairmile had glanced down the room to where a fair-haired girl
was sitting with a rather red-faced man. Douglas’s brows contracted
slightly. That fellow Morchard had attempted to monopolise Cynthia
this evening; but surely anyone could see that the girl was bored. A
persistent creature, Morchard—rather too persistent at times, Douglas
felt. Then at the sound of Westenhanger’s voice, his attention came
back to the bridge-table.

“Game and rubber?” he repeated. “Sorry, partner. My fault entirely.
You see, I’m getting rusty in auction nowadays. It’s nearly gone out
at my club; nobody plays it any more. We’re all on to this new game
that’s just come in.”

“New game? What new game?” demanded Westenhanger, arranging the cards
for his shuffle. “Have the Cardsharpers rediscovered Old Maid or the
simple joys of Happy Families? Out with it, Douglas.”

Douglas Fairmile made a gesture as though apologising for
Westenhanger.

“Tut! Tut! He’s jealous, poor fellow. My fault for mentioning the
Romarin Club. A sore subject with Conway, and no wonder. You know, we
have an entrance examination for candidates: test ’em in following
suit and remembering what’s trump. And somehow Conway didn’t get in.
Or else he was afraid to enter. A sad business, anyhow; don’t let’s
dwell on it. So he calls us the Cardsharpers out of spite.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton began to deal. Douglas passed the box of
cigarettes to Eileen; and, when she refused, took one himself.
Westenhanger looked at him with feigned anxiety.

“I notice a certain tendency to wander in your talk, of late. This
inconsecutiveness of mind is growing on you, Douglas. Do you ever find
yourself, in the morning, putting on your jacket first and your
waistcoat afterwards? Pull yourself together. Squails Up-to-Date, or
something like that, was what you were trying to tell us about before
you began to ramble.”

“Oh! Suspension Bridge, that’s it. Suspension Bridge. Never heard of
it? Well, well. These soulless mechanics! You take the two of spades
out of the pack, put in a joker instead; and then play according to
auction rules. You’ve no notion of the superior feeling it gives you
when you go No Trump with five aces in your hand. Confidence, that’s
the word! A splendid game.”

“Splendid!” Westenhanger conceded, sarcastically. “Invite me to take a
hand in the inaugural game, will you? It’ll be an historic occasion,
no doubt; and I might get my name into the newspapers.”

Douglas looked hurt.

“He doesn’t believe me, Eileen; he thinks I’m . . . Oh, sorry!”

He picked up his cards, and the game continued. For the third time in
succession, Eileen Cressage laid down her hand with an inaudible sigh
of relief. Being dummy, she could think about other things than the
table before her. She had never been a keen bridge-player; her
card-memory was too weak for anything beyond the most obvious tactics.
And on this evening especially, her interest in the game was of the
slightest. She played mechanically; and she had quite failed to note
how, time and again, a skilful intervention by her partner had
extricated her from a risky declaration.

As Westenhanger gathered up their first trick, her mind went back to
her ever-present money difficulties. Some bills had reached her by the
last post. Somehow, bills always dropped in at that time; and she had
begun to dread the very sight of an unsealed envelope among her
correspondence. If these wretched things had come in the morning, the
affairs of the day might have helped to put them out of her mind; but
when they arrived after dinner, they seemed to rivet her attention
through the whole night.

The problems of a girl trying to keep up a decent appearance on a tiny
income seemed to be approaching an insoluble state. Her quarter’s
income was nearly exhausted; and yet something would have to be done.
It was no use approaching her trustees in the hope of anticipating her
income for the next three months. She had tried that before; and all
she had got was a lecture on the folly of over-spending. It appeared
that the thing was impossible under the will. Besides, the trustees
were simply lawyers, without a spark of personal interest in her
affairs or herself. So far as they were concerned, Eileen Cressage was
a name on a deed-box or a docket. No help there, obviously.

And yet something would have to be done. She could pay some of her
creditors and leave the rest of the affairs standing; but which people
ought she to attend to first? Her mind was busy with a sort of jig-saw
puzzle with the bills as a picture and the available money as the
pieces; but with half the fragments missing, it was a hopeless
business. One fact was evident: some of these bills would have to be
settled, and settled soon.

With an effort she put the whole affair at the back of her mind and
tried to divert her attention. But her first glance across the room
brought the thing back to her from a different angle. There was her
host, old Rollo Dangerfield, sitting in a despondent attitude beside
the window. What had he to be low-spirited about? If she herself owned
the Dangerfield Talisman, her troubles would be conjured away. The
thing was worth £50,000 on the last occasion when it had been valued;
and the price of diamonds had gone up a good deal since then.

Her eyes passed to where Mrs. Brent and the American collector sat.
Neither of them had money worries. At sixty, Mrs. Brent seemed to get
a good deal out of life; and the steam yacht in the bay at the foot of
the garden was a fair proof that a few hundred pounds one way or the
other was not likely to trouble her.

A rustle of the cards brought Eileen’s attention to the bridge table.
She leaned back a little in her chair and glanced, with an envy which
was quite devoid of malice, at the three players intent on their game.

Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s husband had been one of those hard-faced men
who had made fortunes in the War. When he died she had got the money;
and her enemies said that the hard face had been bequeathed also, in a
codicil to his will. She certainly had a very keen appreciation of the
value of a Treasury note.

Then there was Douglas Fairmile, with a big private income. His only
worry at present was whether Cynthia Pennard would marry him or not.
No great need for anxiety there, Eileen reflected. Cynthia wasn’t
throwing herself at his head, certainly; but it was one of those
affairs which are bound to come right in the end. If only her own
affairs would look as bright!

Finally, her partner, Conway Westenhanger, very obviously hadn’t a
care in the world. Those mechanical inventions of his were known to be
small gold mines; he wasn’t in love with anyone; and he got on well
with people. What more could a man want?

Half unconsciously she compared the two men. Douglas was once
described to her as “one of those delightful people who can always be
cheery without getting on your nerves with it.” He had the gift of
playing the fool in season without looking like a fool while he was
doing it. One laughed with him, always, and never at him. Conway
Westenhanger was a more complex person, but just as attractive in his
own way. She liked his mouth; its clean-cut lines seemed to have
something sympathetic in their curves; and the thinker’s
sharply-marked vertical lines between the eyebrows rather added to the
attractiveness of his face.

Mrs. Brent broke the silence, addressing her host. “Rollo! would you
mind if we have that window opened further? The heat’s almost
unbearable to-night.”

Old Dangerfield came out of his brown study with a start, made a
gesture of acquiescence, and threw open the window to its full extent.
Through the embrasure a faint breath of air wandered in from the outer
twilight, laden with the smell of parched soil and the heavy perfume
of flowers; but it brought no coolness with it.

“I suppose this doesn’t affect you, Mr. Wraxall?” Mrs. Brent turned to
the American beside her. “You’re a New Yorker, aren’t you? Heat waves
won’t trouble you as much as they do me. You’re acclimatised, no
doubt.”

“It’s warm to-night. It’s certainly not what one calls cool. But I’ll
admit that I’ve known it hotter over there. And this air of yours
hasn’t got that used-up feeling about it that city air has. It’s
fresh, even if it’s hot. You’d know it was garden air and not street
air, even if the flowers weren’t there. But you’re wrong about my
being acclimatised. I don’t use New York much in the summer.”

“Of course, you’ve got a country big enough to let you choose your
climate for almost any day in the year, haven’t you? Well, there’s
something to be said for an island. If this heat gets worse I shall
simply take the _Kestrel_ away for a night or two until the hot spell
is over. Another couple of days of this would be unbearable. Luckily
the Dangerfields understand me; they won’t be offended if I disappear
without warning. One would think twice about doing that with most
people, but Friocksheim is a real Liberty Hall.”

“They’ve been very kind in asking me down,” the American explained. “I
didn’t know them; but I got an introduction; and when I explained I
was interested in some of their things, they invited me to stay for a
few days.”

He glanced through the window and across the moonlit bay which
stretched beyond the lawns.

“The _Kestrel_? Little white yacht with copper funnels, lying in the
bay? Is that the one? I saw her as I drove up here this evening.”

“Yes, that’s the _Kestrel_. You liked her looks?”

“Very pretty. Graceful lines, she has. My own yacht’s rather larger;
but she’s not so neat, not so neat. I wanted lots of room on board.”

“The very thing I didn’t want on the _Kestrel_. I use her as a kind of
retreat, Mr. Wraxall, the place for a rest-cure. I’ve never had a
guest on board; there isn’t even a spare cabin. Sometimes I want to
get clean away from everybody; and that was the best way I could think
of for managing it. Callers don’t drop in when one’s fifty miles from
port.”

The American looked at her with interest kindling in his eyes.

“You feel that way, too? That’s interesting. That’s very interesting.
I take it you’re not a philanthropist, then?”

Mrs. Brent shifted her position slightly and looked up at her
neighbour’s clean-shaven face. It was of the long rather than the
square American type, the face of a man with a certain imagination.

“If you mean contributing to charitable funds and that sort of thing,
I’m certainly not philanthropic,” she answered. “I don’t think I’ve
spent a penny in that way during the last ten years. People come
bothering me with tales of sad cases; at least they used to do that.
But once you get the name of being kind-hearted, you’re simply
pestered to death by demands, mostly from frauds. I’ve shed that
reputation long ago. I don’t say I don’t give something here and
there. Everybody does. But unless I see a thing with my own eyes I
refuse to part with a farthing. My eyesight is still fairly good for
my age; and I’m quite able to see a thing for myself without needing
some fussy creature to point it out to me.”

She broke off suddenly and showed her fine teeth in a faint smile.

“You’ve touched there on a thing that always irritates me. I’ve got
rather a bad reputation over it. They call me a skinflint. There’s an
American phrase for that, isn’t there?”

“You mean a tight-wad, perhaps. Yes, that would be it, a tight-wad.”

He dismissed the subject, seeming to think of something else.

“A minute or two back you were saying you wanted to get away from
humanity now and again. I sympathise with you there. I can understand
the feeling. I open the newspaper in the morning and it says a new
fibre has made finer lingerie possible. I don’t use lingerie. Further
on, there’s something else about floor stains. That lacks the personal
appeal. So does the one about candies. My digestion’s too poor for
candies. Then I come across ‘Buy Jones’s Razors.’ I don’t buy Jones’s
razors. Perhaps my man buys them. I don’t know. But you see how it is.
Everywhere one goes these things hit the retina. There’s no escape
from this modern way of pushing things. My own company does it. I get
tired of it. I want to forget Jones’s razors, and Smith’s Confected
Candies, and . . . and . . . dollars, and cents, and the whole
twentieth century. I want to blot it all out of my mind. I want to get
among old things, things that were made long before dollars were
thought of. That’s restful. That’s the kind of thing I like. Something
that looks as if your Queen Elizabeth might have used it, or one of
your Henries. If it’s got a history attached to it, I like it all the
more.”

Mrs. Brent’s face showed a blend of sympathy and amusement.

“So _that’s_ how you became a collector?”

Wraxall smiled also.

“Well, Mrs. Brent, that’s part of the truth. That certainly is a
factor. But there’s more to it than that. You may laugh at me if you
like. You may certainly laugh. But I love these old things for
themselves. It gives me a real pleasure to handle them, just to turn
them over and over and look at them. And to wonder about the people
who wore them. These things mean more to me than all the
history-books. Much more.”

Mrs. Brent’s white-framed face became more sympathetic. She recognised
a kindred spirit in the American, although his line of escape from the
modern world was not the same as her own.

“Don’t forget to see the Dangerfield Talisman before you go, Mr.
Wraxall. They’ll be glad to show it to you and tell you the legend.
There are some photographs of it, too. You might be able to take one
of them back for your collection.”

Mr. Wraxall brushed the suggestion aside.

“Photographs would be no use to me. They haven’t the appeal. No.”

He paused for a moment; then, studying her face, he continued:

“I thought of taking the thing itself back with me in the fall, if it
could be arranged.”

“The Dangerfield Talisman?” Mrs. Brent almost lost her manners in her
astonishment. “You thought of taking that back with you! Why, the
thing’s absurd. They’d sooner part with Friocksheim than with the
Talisman; and they’ve held Friocksheim since before the Conquest.”

“I wouldn’t stick at a few thousand pounds one way or the other. I’d
set my heart on getting that Talisman. I’ve come four thousand miles
for it, specially. That shows I’m interested. I’m keenly interested.
I’m not a bargainer. They’ve only to name their price and I’ll pay
it.”

“But, my dear man, this isn’t a case where money comes in at all,
don’t you see? The thing’s unbuyable, you may take my word for it.”

The American scanned her face carefully.

“I see you mean it,” he commented, “but I came here specially to
procure that Talisman. I couldn’t be content to take your word for it.
Maybe you’re right. Perhaps you know best. But I’ll have to go to
headquarters with my offer and make sure. I’m not doubting what you
say. Not at all. I hadn’t a notion there was any difficulty in the
road. None at all. But you’ll understand that, without doubting what
you say in the very least, I’ve got to make sure?”

Mrs. Brent had recovered from her astonishment.

“Oh, certainly, go ahead. I shan’t feel offended, if that’s what you
mean. But I warn you that it’s quite useless—out of the question.”

The American made a non-committal gesture. Mrs. Brent thought it best
to change the subject.

“This heat seems to be getting worse, if anything. I must really get a
fan. I’m old-fashioned enough to have one.”

She rose and left the room. Wraxall transferred his interest to his
host who was still gazing absently out over the gardens. Mrs. Brent’s
evident amazement at his suggestion had given the American something
to think about. Things were not going to be so simple as he had
imagined. He glanced across at Rollo Dangerfield’s profile, trying to
estimate the chances of overcoming his objections if he really proved
obdurate.

“Why, he might be an old Norseman come to life,” Wraxall said to
himself. “Put one of those winged helmets on his head, and with that
profile and that big white moustache he could sit to any painter for
the portrait of a Viking. He’s not likely to be anybody’s money when
it comes to bargaining. Stubborn. Obstinate. It’s going to be none so
easy after all.”

He studied his host covertly until he was interrupted by Mrs. Brent’s
return. She slipped into her chair and began to fan herself with an
air of relief.

“This is the kind of night when one appreciates the Dangerfield
methods,” she said, after a time. “They know how I hate climbing
stairs; and they gave me a room on the ground floor. It’s the only
one; all the rest are above. I blessed them just now as I passed the
staircase and remembered that I might have had to climb it. I’ve got
to the age when one economises on the unnecessary as far as possible;
and I count stair climbing as a luxury on that standard.”

A great moth swept suddenly in through the open window, veered and
swerved blindly over Rollo Dangerfield’s head, and then blundered out
once more into the darkness. Mrs. Brent followed its flight; and her
eyes caught the sky beyond the embrasure.

“Rollo!” she raised her voice to attract his attention. “Is there any
sign of that thunderstorm breaking? I wish it would come, and perhaps
the air would clear a little after it.”

Old Dangerfield leaned forward a little and scanned the visible
horizon.

“I’m afraid it’s no good. The clouds are lighter than they were an
hour ago; and I shouldn’t expect it to break to-night now.”

Mrs. Brent fanned herself resignedly.

“I’m not altogether sorry. That cure is almost as bad as the disease
for me, Mr. Wraxall. A thunderstorm shakes my nerves to pieces
always—I don’t know why. I’m not afraid of being struck, or anything
of that kind; but the noise of thunder seems to get down somewhere
into my subconsciousness and set me all on edge. After a real bad
storm I’m hardly normal. I feel I might do anything wild; try to fly
downstairs, steal my best friend’s spoons, or something equally
idiotic.”

The American looked at her with a faint twinkle in his eye.

“Now that’s curious, Mrs. Brent, that’s very curious indeed. For, you
see, thunderstorms take me quite the other way. I like them. I’d sit
up all night to watch a good thunderstorm. Give me a chair, and a good
wide window, with not too much iron near it, and I’d be content to
watch the flashes so long as they like to come.”

He turned to the nearest window as he spoke, and then seemed to study
it for a moment or two.

“That kind of window wouldn’t be much use as a stall for the
performance. It’s too deep-set. Are the walls of this house really a
couple of yards thick, the way they seem to be at the window-sill
there?”

“Several feet thick in this part of Friocksheim. This is the old part
of the house, you know—some of it dates from the time when the place
was a castle, and they had to make walls thick and windows small. And
of course that’s quite a recent thing. Here and there about the
building you’ll find remnants of a much older Friocksheim. There’s a
gateway you must get the Dangerfields to show you. It’s old enough to
satisfy you, I should think.”

“I’d like to see it. It would be very interesting to me. And there
must be some things worth visiting in the neighbourhood too. Perhaps
you could tell me what I ought to go and see.”

“There’s a battered sort of monument on the road to Frogsholme
village, about a mile and a half from here. I believe I remember
hearing that it had something to do with Runic, whatever that is. And
there are one or two other things you might care to look at.”

For a time she gave him the benefit of her rather scrappy knowledge of
the local antiquities, while he jotted down notes in his pocket-book.
At last, when he had exhausted her store, he looked at his watch and
made a gesture of apology.

“It’s late, Mrs. Brent. I really hadn’t meant to keep you so long. But
what you’ve been telling me is interesting, and I’ve got a thirst for
knowledge about that kind of thing. You’ve helped me considerably.
That information will be of great assistance to me.”

“Why not begin with the nearest? Mr. Dangerfield will be delighted to
show you the Talisman to-night, I’m sure, if you wish it. And be sure
to get him to tell you the legend of the pool. It may save you
trouble, you know. You’ll see that your idea about the Talisman is
quite hopeless.”

“That’s an idea. That’s a good idea, Mrs. Brent. I always like to
know, right away, what sort of proposition I’m up against. I’ve not
given up hope yet, you understand? I’m quite set on taking that
Talisman home with me somehow, if it can be managed. And I think it
can, one way or another.”

Conway Westenhanger’s voice came across the room. The bridge-table was
breaking up.

“I make it twenty-seven pounds twelve. You might check the figures,
Douglas. I’m more at home in the calculus than in simple arithmetic;
and it’s quite likely I’ve made a slip.”

“Right,” said Douglas. “It isn’t your honesty I’m in doubt
about, merely your capacity. The great brains are always a bit
one-sided—top-heavy, if you take my meaning. Let’s see. Eight and
six . . .”

He rapidly checked the addition.

“Correct! Well, you scrape through with a caution this time; but don’t
do it again.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton produced a roll of notes and counted out
twenty-seven pounds ten on the table between Eileen and herself.

“One moment. I have a florin somewhere.”

“Don’t trouble about it,” Eileen hastened to reassure her. “You
needn’t hunt for it. Let it stand.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton continued her search and at last discovered the
missing coin.

“I don’t like letting things stand over. Settle for cash, that’s
always been my principle in bridge. I can’t be worried with
remembering odd shillings from day to day.”

Eileen Cressage picked up her winnings gratefully. She was not
disturbed by Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s manner. She was too overwhelmed by
relief. Here was an absolute windfall which would go some distance
towards solving the problem of her debts. Twenty-seven pounds! And she
had given only half her attention to the game. If she had put her mind
to it they might have won a good deal more. She had not even asked
what stakes they were playing for; she had been too worried to think
about that. A couple more nights like this and she would be able to
pay off all her creditors.

“Sorry I shan’t be able to give you your revenge to-morrow, Douglas,”
she heard Conway Westenhanger say, as he rose from the table. “I’ve
got to run up to town for a couple of days. My patent-agent seems to
have got on the track of an infringement of one of my affairs, and he
wants to go into the business. That means Chancery Lane, Patent Office
Library, and all the rest of it. Whew! It will be hot!”

Douglas’s good-natured face corrugated in a grin of commiseration; but
already he was moving across the room to where Cynthia Pennard was
sitting. Morchard watched his coming with a discontented eye.

Mrs. Brent, glad to be relieved from the American’s inquisition on
local monuments, went across to Rollo Dangerfield’s chair and gazed
out of the window.

“No, that storm won’t break to-night, I’m afraid. It’s moved further
on. But it’s got on my nerves already. I wish it would break and get
the thing over. This heat wave might pass, then.”

She drew back from the embrasure and bent over old Dangerfield.

“Rollo! I think Mr. Wraxall would like to have a look at the Talisman
to-night, if you aren’t too tired.”

Rollo Dangerfield heaved himself up out of his chair, his six-foot
height overtopping Mrs. Brent’s slight figure as he rose.

“Certainly, if Mr. Wraxall wishes it. We can go along now, if he cares
about it.”

Eileen Cressage had caught the rapid interchange of talk.

“Oh! Are you going to tell him the Legend? May I come? I’d like to
hear it.”

“What legend? About the Talisman? I haven’t heard it either,” said
Westenhanger. “Do you mind my coming with you along with the rest?”

Rollo Dangerfield’s smile had a touch of wistfulness, in which it
seemed curiously alien from the general cast of his features.

“Anyone who is interested will be welcome,” he said, with a touch of
an old-fashioned courtesy which seemed to be so much in character in
his case. And, crossing the room, he opened the door for the party to
pass out under his guidance.



Chapter II

The group of Rollo Dangerfield’s followers diminished as it passed
along the corridor. At the main entrance, Douglas and Cynthia slipped
aside and went off by themselves down the broad steps into the
gardens. Further on, beyond the great staircase, Mrs. Brent bade her
companions good-night and turned into her room. Only five of his
guests were left to follow the old man to the end of the corridor,
where he threw open an unlocked door.

“This is what we call the Corinthian’s Room,” he explained as he
ushered them into it. “It was my grandfather’s favourite spot in the
house, and it got its name from him. He was one of the Regency
bucks—no worse than the rest of them, perhaps, but a hard liver and a
hard gambler in his day. An eccentric, too, like most of them. I can
show you one of his eccentricities in a moment, if you care to see
it.”

The room was about forty feet square, with a huge stone fireplace. A
great cupboard of oak occupied part of one wall. Another wall was hung
with an aged tapestry representing Diana pursuing a stag. The floor
was of marble slabs, mainly white; but in the centre, black squares of
marble had been introduced so as to make a gigantic chess-board
pattern. Opposite the fireplace was a narrow and shallow niche filled
with a glass case.

Rollo Dangerfield switched on the electric lights and led the visitors
towards the recess. As they came near it, they saw within the case a
bell of faintly tinted glass, under which lay, on a velvet bed, an
ancient ornament.

“That is the Dangerfield Talisman,” said old Rollo, pointing to the
case. “You can see what it is: one of those golden armlets which were
worn in the olden times. It’s too heavy for our modern tastes, I’m
afraid. You would hardly care to carry that, Miss Cressage.”

He turned to Eileen with a faint smile.

“It’s very heavy for an ornament—something over a pound, I believe,”
he went on, as his guests drew nearer to look closely at the jewel.
“Of course, the value of the gold is nothing to speak of, perhaps
under a hundred pounds. The stones are of more interest in some
people’s eyes. There are eight of them in all—you can see the others
reflected in the mirror at the back, if you look closely.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton examined the Talisman with an appraising eye.

“I agree with you. It’s too heavy in the design.”

Eileen Cressage bent forward and seemed to compare the size of the
ornament with her own white arm.

“If a girl wore that,” she said, “she must have been splendid. It’s
not a bit clumsy. She must have been slim, if anything, with small
hands, or she couldn’t have got it over them.”

“Let’s try it on Miss Cressage,” said Morchard, suddenly, and he moved
forward as he spoke. The case had a plain sheet of glass immediately
in front of the jewel, through which it could be examined, whilst at
either side was a glass door kept secured by a tiny handle. As
Morchard put out his hand, Rollo Dangerfield stopped him with a
gesture.

“I’m sorry,” he said, “but it’s one of our family customs never to
take the Talisman out of its case—never even to lift the shade from
it.”

He smiled, faintly apologetic, but evidently unbending in defence of
his traditions.

“These ideas grow up somehow, in ways that are difficult to trace back
to their births; but as time goes on, they gain a sort of sanctity
from tradition, and speaking for myself, I should be sorry if I were
the first of us to break this particular custom. There are so few of
the old things left in this twentieth century world, and perhaps you
young people won’t grudge me this one, if I keep it.”

The touch of wistfulness had come back into his voice, robbing his
refusal of the faintest trace of offence. Eileen, afraid that some of
the others might embarrass the old man by pressing him to let them
handle the jewel, hastened to put in a word before Morchard could open
his mouth.

“I’d love to try it on; but what Mr. Dangerfield says is quite right.
And now, I’d like to hear its story—the legend, I mean.”

Rollo Dangerfield silently invited them to seat themselves. Then,
leaning against the case containing the Talisman, he turned to face
his audience and began to speak. At first he seemed nervous of his
effect; but as the tale went on, his voice changed into a monotone, as
though he were reciting some well-remembered ritual.

“You must bear in mind that this is a very old tale, far older than
any written document that we have. True enough, it fits the geography
of Friocksheim; but for all we know, the legend may be far older than
Friocksheim and may deal with some Pool which none of us has ever
seen. You know that we Dangerfields came into England from the North,
away back in the troubled days before the Conquest. Friocksheim, I’m
told, is a corruption of Fricca’s Heim, Frea’s Heim, the dwelling of
Frea, the wife of Odin. There is no doubt about us as a race.”

He lifted his old head proudly, and the Viking resemblance stood out
undeniably in his features. Then, with a smile that showed the strong
white teeth, he added:

“I needn’t emphasise the final stage in the corruption of the name as
you find it in the village: our Friocksheim has changed to Frogsholme,
on the lips of these godless aborigines.”

He paused for a moment and shifted his position slightly, so that he
could see the Talisman as it lay under his arm.

“You must understand, then,” he went on, “that this legend comes down
to us from days when Valhalla still opened its gates to the heroes;
and the spirits of winds, and woods, and streams, moved among men in
their visible forms. It may be mere allegory; possibly it is the
transmutation of some quite normal happening, a love tale magnified
and distorted in the telling.

“One summer’s night, the legend runs, Ulric, the Lord of Friocksheim,
went out into the moonlight, seeking coolness after the heat of his
castle walls. And, so wandering, he came by the Pool and sat beside
the water, watching the rising of the mist from the surface of the
mere. As he sat thus, lost in thought, the moonlight sparkled upon
something before him, and, bending forward, he grasped the Talisman.
So he sat, with the armlet in his hand; and as he watched, the mists
of the lake grew denser and drew closer; and there stepped at last
from among their folds a maiden.”

Old Rollo bent towards the Talisman, so that his face was partly
hidden from his audience.

“Very little has come down to us—only a few words in a tale. Yet even
these halting words conjure up for me a wonder; a being, young, and
proud, and fair, a form and grace surpassing all the beauty of women;
a flash of divinity passing across the screen of the flesh.”

He let his voice drop into silence for a moment before he continued:

“The legend tells that she was betrothed to the Spirit of the Pool,
the Frog King. But Ulric won her. She gave him the Talisman which she
had come back to seek; and, when he desired her, he had but to dip it
in the Pool and she came to him—for so long as that moon still shone.
And she charged him, when she was with him, to keep the Talisman and
to hand it down; for it would be the Luck of Friocksheim. And so,
night after night, the Lord of Friocksheim went down to the Pool and
washed the Talisman in its waters and wandered with his love in the
wood beside the mere—until the moon came no more over the trees. But
the next night, when he dipped the Talisman in the waters, there came
swimming to him a loathsome little shape which laughed and jeered at
him, saying: ‘The Frog King has her for his bride.’”

Old Rollo turned back towards his audience again.

“So the Dangerfield Talisman is only a reminder of an old lie. Even at
the best, it’s a memorial of lying and deceit—and punishment.”

His voice sounded bitter for a moment, but he went back at once to his
ordinary tone:

“There it is: the Dangerfield Luck. I don’t say I believe the legend;
I won’t say I doubt it. However the thing came to us, it’s our oldest
possession and experts tell me that the workmanship is extraordinarily
old. And now, I think I can show you something less romantic, though
it’s not without its interest.”

He moved forward and pushed aside some rugs with his foot, so that the
black and white marble squares in the centre of the floor were
cleared.

“I told you, I think, that this was the room mainly used by my
grandfather, the Corinthian. It was, in fact, the very last room he
ever entered. Possibly some of you remember something about the
Regency times, the gambling, the prize-fighting, the duelling that
went on. Eccentricity was often the pass-key to notoriety in those
days; some of the bucks cultivated it wilfully. I believe that my
grandfather was genuinely eccentric in this particular affair. He was
a fanatic for chess playing and this was his chess board. You see the
marble squares on the floor.”

He stooped down and lifted a metal plug from the centre of a square.

“Each of these squares has a plug like this at its centre. They’re
really put in to keep dirt out of the holes when no game is being
played. When they wanted to set the pieces, all the plugs were taken
out; and then the board was ready.”

He stepped across the room and threw open the oaken cupboard on the
wall.

“These are the chess-men. You see they are on a scale to match the
board, each of them about a foot and a half high. Mr. Westenhanger,
would you mind lifting one of them out—a pawn will do. They’re too
heavy for me, nowadays.”

Westenhanger came forward and gripped one of the iron pieces.

“Lift it up off the shelf before you pull it forward,” said old
Dangerfield. “There’s a spike on the foot of each piece, fitting into
a hole in the shelf—the spike that goes into the hole in the
chess-board, so that the piece can’t be accidentally knocked over.
They’re top-heavy things. The Staunton pattern wasn’t invented in
those days.”

It took more effort than Westenhanger had expected to lift the thing
from its place and carry it over to the chess-board. He dropped it
into position on one of the squares, the iron rod slipping easily into
the hole and fixing the piece firmly.

“Rather like a railway chess-board, isn’t it?” he said, as he went
back to his seat, “but a good deal of trouble to play a game with
pieces of that weight, I should think.”

Old Rollo’s eyes twinkled.

“I doubt if they’d have played much if they’d been left to their own
exertions. As a matter of fact, each player had a lackey to shift his
pieces for him while he sat comfortably in his chair.”

He came forward and sat down as he spoke.

“This chess-board looks innocent enough; but it brought the death of
my grandfather. You know what it was like in those days: men would
quarrel about the tint of a snuff-box and fight a fatal duel over the
fit of a cravat. My grandfather was as much of a fire-eater as his
friends. Some miserable squabble took place in this room while they
were actually playing on that board; probably a mere drunken
difference of opinion about some absurd trifle or other. They went out
with pistols in the dawn; and the other man was the luckier of the
two. Perhaps he deserved to be. No one knows now what they fought
about. My grandfather was shot in the head—killed instantly.”

Rollo Dangerfield rose, and drawing from his pocket a bunch of keys,
he opened a small safe buried in the wall of the room beside the
fireplace. From one of the divisions of the safe he extracted a
worn-looking paper and a peculiar disc-like object.

“Here are two other relics. We preserve most things; and as this was
the last document my grandfather put on paper, we’ve kept it in
safety. You may as well see it.”

He handed the paper to Wraxall, who studied it intently before passing
it to his neighbour. At the top of the sheet were two lines of
handwriting:

    Nox Nocti Indicat Scientiam.
    Matt VI. 21; Luke XII. 34.

Below this was a rough diagram of a chess-board with certain pieces
placed as in an end-game or a problem.

[Illustration: A chess-board diagram. Black is down a bishop, both
knights, and two pawns. White is down five pawns and the queen.
Neither player is in check; however, the Black king cannot move, being
surrounded by its own pieces as well as a White bishop.]

Wraxall turned the paper over in search of something further; but the
back of the sheet was blank.

The American passed the manuscript to Mrs. Caistor Scorton and held
out his hand for the second object which Rollo Dangerfield had taken
from the safe. It was a circular disc cut from a sheet of leather.
Originally the sheet may have been the same thickness as a boot-sole,
or rather thinner; but a century of atmospheric changes had warped and
contorted its form. Evidently when new it had been about two and a
half inches in diameter. Through the centre of the leather there
passed a piece of twine secured on one side of the disc by a knot and
looped on the other side into a fixed ringlet of a size which would
just admit a hand. Wraxall turned the object over and over, but it
suggested nothing to him. After a final inspection, he passed it also
to his neighbour, and then turned inquiringly to Rollo Dangerfield.

“It suggests nothing to you?” old Dangerfield demanded perfunctorily.
He took back both objects after they had been examined by everyone,
and held up the paper so that they could see it. “This first line, in
Latin, is simply part of the second verse of the Nineteenth Psalm:
_Night unto night sheweth knowledge._ The two references to the
Gospels give you the verse: _Where your treasure is, there will your
heart be also._ I am afraid we can’t discover anything from that part
of the document. The rest of it seems easier to account for, if I tell
you a little more about the paper.”

He put the sheet on his knee and leaned back in his chair as though
tired.

“You see the rough sketch of the chess-board,” he went on after a
moment or two. “That gives the position in which the pieces were found
on this board here after his death. Possibly it represents the
end-position in that game during which the quarrel arose between him
and his opponent. He must have attached some importance to it himself,
for he came into this room just before going off to his duel, jotted
the thing down, and left orders that it was to be given to his son if
anything happened. That, I must admit, seems to suggest that he was
not quite in a normal frame of mind when he put the thing on paper;
for at that date my father was a boy of four or five years old. We
Dangerfields are a very late-marrying family, for some reason or
other. Obviously a child of that age could have no interest in
chess-endings. Put that together with the three texts; and I believe
the normal mind would say that my grandfather’s brain was still
bemused with his night’s wine—he drank an enormous quantity of port,
they say—and that in a muddled-headed way he scribbled down this
end-game, added one or two of his favourite texts, and then, with some
idea that the texts might be of service to his son, he left directions
for the paper to be handed on.”

He glanced amusedly round the circle to see if they shared this view.

“Unfortunately,” he continued, “that explanation falls short of
completeness on one matter. This little leather disc was also to be
handed to my father. Was it a toy that he had made for the boy?
Perhaps he had promised it to the child, and even at that dangerous
moment he remembered his promise? I like to think that there was
something of the kind in his mind. But if there had been any promise
of the sort, my father had forgotten it. When they questioned him he
knew nothing about it. Quite possibly it was a promised toy. You know
what the memory of a four-year-old is like and how difficult it is to
catch hold of something which he has once allowed to slip. Nothing
came of it.”

His fingers played almost affectionately with the wrinkled scrap of
leather.

“My grandfather’s death left my father an orphan; for his mother had
died a year or two earlier. The paper was preserved and handed to my
father, when he came of age, by the lawyer of our family who had
impounded it shortly after its discovery. It meant nothing to anyone.
Whatever meaning it carried had been lost. All that it meant to my
father was the last link with his Corinthian ancestor; and I believed
that he preserved it on that account. At any rate, it found its way
into the Dangerfield archives, and there it is likely to remain.”

“And you, yourself, haven’t any idea about it, Mr. Dangerfield?” asked
Eileen. “Surely he must have had something in his mind when he wrote
it. Tell us what you think of it, if you can.”

“I can give you a guess,” said old Dangerfield, “but it’s a guess and
nothing more. My own view is that the quarrel had arisen over some
question of their play; and my grandfather wanted a permanent record
left, so as to be able to prove his point in cold blood later on. In
addition to being a gambler and one of the most remarkable
spendthrifts of his day, he was an obstinate man. We know that to our
cost. The Dangerfield jewels used to be a very fine collection; but
after his death it was found that most of the good things had
vanished—converted into cash and gambled away in backing that
obstinate opinion of his. After a couple of generations we’re still
suffering from the inroads he made into the estate.”

“Is anything more known about him?” asked Westenhanger.

“Not very much that’s creditable, I’m afraid. Oh, yes! I believe that
he made himself rather ridiculous by an improvement of the
hobby-horse.”

“He must have been a rum bird!” commented Westenhanger.

Rollo Dangerfield hastened to explain.

“Not a rocking-horse. I mean that two-wheeled thing like a safety
bicycle that some of the Corinthians used to amuse themselves
with. One sat in the saddle and pushed the thing along with one’s
feet on the ground—like running in a chair, rather. It had a vogue
at one time. I’m told that he brought out a new pattern with
treadles—something like the present child’s scooter in principle. At
any rate, it was rather frowned on, and he was glad to let it drop.
But you see that he was evidently akin to you on one side at least.”

“Now there’s just one other thing I’d like to hear about, if you can
tell us, Mr. Dangerfield.” Eileen Cressage looked rather doubtfully at
the old man as she spoke. “Perhaps I’m indiscreet; and if I am, please
say so at once. People talk about the Dangerfield Secret. They say
it’s something like the one in that Scots family up in the north—you
know, the thing the heir is told when he’s twenty-one. Is there really
a Dangerfield secret?”

Old Rollo Dangerfield’s face hardened perceptibly for a moment; and he
looked at the girl with an inscrutable expression. Then, evidently
reading in her face a fear that she had offended him, he relaxed his
attitude slightly and tried to put her at her ease again.
Nevertheless, the tone of his voice was sufficient to show that he
disliked the subject.

“There is something which people call the Dangerfield Secret. Helga
doesn’t know it. She’ll be told when she’s twenty-five. My nephew Eric
knows it, since he’s the next male heir. I can say no more about it.”

Westenhanger relieved the slight strain that followed by getting up
and stepping across to the Talisman’s case.

“I suppose you put this in the safe each night, Mr. Dangerfield? It
would hardly do to leave it exposed like this for anyone to pick up.
It must be worth a small fortune.”

Old Dangerfield looked across the room.

“It was valued last in my grandfather’s time, and they put it down as
being worth some £50,000 then. The diamonds were said to be very fine;
and you can see the size of the stones for yourself.”

“I don’t think I’d trust it in a small safe like that, if it were
mine,” said Westenhanger, glancing at the little iron door from which
Rollo Dangerfield had taken the document. “Any man with a pocket
crowbar could open that thing and get away with the Talisman.”

The old man laughed shortly.

“Don’t trouble about the safe. The Talisman is never put into that.
The fact is, you have come up against another of the Dangerfield
superstitions. The Talisman is never moved from its place by day or
night. It stands where you see it, always.”

The American sat up suddenly.

“You leave it there, sir? You take no precautions against crooks? You
don’t mean to tell me anyone could step in here, lift that bell, and
clear off with the goods?”

He paused, as if struck by a thought. Then he continued in another
tone.

“I take it that you’re fully covered by insurance?”

Rollo Dangerfield’s face took on a faintly sardonic expression. He
seemed to enjoy surprising the American.

“Not at all. The Talisman has never been insured. Why should we insure
it? It always comes back. We have electric alarms on all the outer
doors and the windows, of course; but they are merely put on because
my wife is nervous. The Talisman can look after itself, I assure you.”

Wraxall looked at his host in amazement.

“Do you really mean that?”

He thought for a moment, and then a fresh idea seemed to strike him.

“Now I see! You’ve got some medieval mantrap or spring-gun attached to
the thing, something that grips your burglar if he comes after your
property?”

Rollo Dangerfield’s laugh was quite free from sarcasm; he evidently
enjoyed the jest which he alone could see.

“No, Mr. Wraxall, nary a spring-gun, as I believe some of your
compatriots might say. Not so much as a mantrap. You could lift the
thing from its bed at any hour of the day or night without the
slightest risk. My nephew Eric has rooms in the tower above us; but
even if he heard you, I doubt if he would trouble to interrupt you. We
know our Talisman. It always comes home.”

The American was plainly astounded.

“It seems to me, Mr. Dangerfield, that you’re presuming a good deal on
your safety in the past. Crooks nowadays aren’t likely to be
frightened off by talk. No, it would take more than a Castle Spectre
to keep some of our smashers out of here if they only knew what you’ve
told us.”

Rollo Dangerfield’s white eyebrows contracted slightly. It was evident
to them all that he was displeased at being doubted. He leaned forward
and spoke directly to the American.

“Now this is authentic, Mr. Wraxall. You can look up the accounts in
the local papers of the time, if you care to go to the trouble. I
shall be very pleased to give you the dates, if necessary. At least
twice within the last half century an attempt has been made to rob us
of the Talisman. Once a drunken tramp made his way in here during the
night and took the armlet. He was afraid to get rid of it anywhere
near here; and three days later he was arrested for some other crime;
the Talisman was found on him and returned to us. The second case was
a genuine burglary. One of the keepers saw the man leave the house and
gave chase. The fellow dropped dead—heart failure, it was said to
be—and the Talisman was found in his hand.”

The American said nothing; but quite obviously he was not convinced.
Old Dangerfield seemed to be nettled.

“I am not trying to convince you, Mr. Wraxall. I suppose that would be
quite impossible. But I tell you this frankly: If the Talisman
disappeared to-night, the last thing I should think of doing would be
to call in the police. The Talisman guards itself. Within seven days
at the outside, it would be back there under the bell.”

Eileen Cressage had been listening eagerly to the old man’s words; but
at this last statement, her surprise broke out.

“You wouldn’t call in the police, Mr. Dangerfield? You’d really trust
to the Talisman finding its way home? It seems amazing.”

“You may take me at my word, Miss Cressage. I mean exactly what I say
in this matter. If the Talisman disappeared, either by day or by
night, I should not trouble to call in police assistance. Why should
I, when I know what I do know? Of course I mean what I say. Did you
ever see anything like the Talisman guarded with so little care? If I
did not believe implicitly that it would come back, wouldn’t I have it
trenched round with all manner of protections? Of course! Let it go!
What does that matter, since it is certain to be over there again
before long.”

Conway Westenhanger turned from the Talisman’s niche, but as he
crossed the tessellated floor his eye was caught by something which he
had not noticed before. He stooped for an instant and glanced keenly
at the corners of one or two squares.

“Something there that’s got plugged with dirt,” he reflected. “Holes a
bit bigger than a large pin’s head, they seem to be. Nothing
important, evidently, since they’re choked up in that fashion.”



Chapter III

Freddie Stickney owed his presence in the Friocksheim house-party to
qualities other than those which make a welcome guest. He was a mean
little man, with a skin which invariably proved itself impenetrable to
ordinary social pin-pricks; and this thickness of hide enabled him to
thrust himself into positions wherein an average individual would have
felt too keenly that he was an intruder. He had invited himself,
knowing Rollo Dangerfield’s dislike for hurting people’s feelings and
counting on that quality to avoid a refusal; and, having arrived, he
proposed to stay for just as long as it suited him to do so. Not that
he had any special interest in the Dangerfields. He had angled for
three other invitations before turning to Friocksheim as a last
resource. However, he was quite prepared to make the most of it, now
that he had fixed the thing up. “Even the best of us,” he reflected
philosophically, “even the best of us have to put up with the
second-best at times.” And in this kindly spirit he had come down from
town.

Freddie’s lack of popularity was due to certain peculiarities in his
mind. An acquaintance of his, hard put to it to account for the
matter, had explained it thus: “Freddie’s got a certain acuteness.
Give him a fact, and he’ll worry at it and draw inferences from it.
And the funny thing is that every inference he draws tends to
discredit somebody or something. And yet he doesn’t do it out of
malice. It’s just Freddie’s way. He’s got that kind of mind—can’t help
making people uncomfortable.”

On the afternoon of the day after Rollo Dangerfield had shown the
Talisman to his guests, Freddie was lounging on a seat in the garden
when one of these inference-bearing facts crossed his mind.

“Why,” he said to himself, “now that Westenhanger’s gone to town, we
shall be thirteen at table to-night. That’s very thoughtless of the
Dangerfields. Out of thirteen people there’s certain to be at least
one person who’s superstitious. That’ll be most uncomfortable for
everybody. I think I’d better mention it before we sit down.”

As it chanced he had not to wait so long before announcing his
discovery. Before he had finished a mental analysis of the probable
distribution of superstition among his fellow-guests, Mrs. Dangerfield
came into view, armed with gloves and scissors. Freddie rose and
joined her.

“Going to cut some flowers?” he inquired. “May I help?”

Mrs. Dangerfield refused his assistance; but Freddie was not to be
shaken off.

“Friend of mine once suffered badly. Tore his finger with a thorn,
then let some dirt into it. Careless fellow he was, poor chap. It
suppurated, swelled up, they had to take the finger off at last.”

Mrs. Dangerfield deliberately put on her gardening gloves.

“I don’t think I shall run much risk in these, Mr. Stickney.”

“No? Perhaps not. Still, one never can tell, you know. A single prick
from a rose-thorn would be enough.”

Mrs. Dangerfield laughed.

“You must be a terribly thoughtful person to live with.”

Freddie considered this for a moment.

“No. Just a knack I have of seeing a thing and knowing how it happens.
That reminds me—we shall be thirteen at table to-night. Don’t mind
myself, of course—and I’m sure you don’t mind either—but some of the
people might, you know. It’s awkward.”

“I shouldn’t trouble about it, Mr. Stickney. As a matter of fact, I
remembered it yesterday and rang up Mrs. Tuxford. She and the doctor
will dine with us to-night. So no one’s feelings will be ruffled. And
of course we never have a full party at lunch. Is your mind relieved?”

Mrs. Dangerfield did not like Freddie Stickney.

“But what about breakfast to-morrow?” pursued the indefatigable
inquirer. “They might happen to turn up all at the same time.”

“Mrs. Brent always breakfasts in her own room,” said Mrs. Dangerfield,
who was tired of the subject. “I’m sorry. I have some orders to give
to this gardener.”

Dismissed in this summary fashion Freddie Stickney wandered about the
grounds until it was time to go into the house and dress. He was
feeling rather bored. Friocksheim might be cheaper than the Continent,
but undeniably it was slow. Nothing happened at Friocksheim. These
people seemed to have no interest in scandal. He began to wish that
something would turn up to liven things a little. He had had hopes of
Morchard at first. The mottle-faced fellow seemed to be keen on the
girls; and anything might turn up. But none of the girls seemed
interested in Morchard. Nor did they seem fascinated by Freddie
himself. A slow place, decidedly slow. He was thoughtful while he
dressed. If the Dangerfield circle was going to turn out so boring he
might be forced to leave earlier than he had intended; but that would
mean paying hotel bills somewhere, and Freddie’s frugal mind could
hardly bring itself to consider that prospect except as a last resort.

After dinner the party split up. Douglas Fairmile, complaining
bitterly of the heat and clamouring for fresh air, easily persuaded
Cynthia to follow him out into the gardens. Old Dangerfield impressed
Freddie Stickney to make up a bridge four with Nina Lindale and the
doctor’s wife. As they sat down Mrs. Tuxford put in a plea for small
stakes.

“What do you call ‘small stakes?’” demanded Freddie. “As low as ten
bob a hundred? They’re playing their usual points at the other table,
I think.”

He glanced over his shoulder as he spoke, and noted that Mrs. Caistor
Scorton and Morchard were playing against Eric Dangerfield and Eileen.

The doctor’s wife, a shy-looking girl, seemed taken aback by Freddie’s
ideas.

“I simply can’t afford to play for anything higher than a shilling a
hundred,” she said, ignoring Freddie’s ill-suppressed astonishment at
the figure. “I’m sorry, but there it is.”

Rollo Dangerfield winced under Freddie’s tactlessness. He knew that
the doctor’s practice was a very small one; and he admired the girl
for having the grit to keep the stakes down.

“Quite right,” he interjected, swiftly, before Freddie could say
anything further, “I agree with you, Mrs. Tuxford. A shilling a
hundred suits well enough if one’s keen on the game for its own sake.
I’d much rather play with people who want to win a rubber than with
other people who only want to win a sovereign.”

“I’m quite pleased to play for a shilling a hundred,” said Nina
Lindale.

Freddie could take a hint as well as most people. His eyes opened a
little wider, but nothing else showed whether he was pleased or
displeased. As the game began, the doctor came across the room and
glanced at his wife’s hand.

Mrs. Brent, feeling the thunderous closeness of the night, had made
her way to a chair beside one of the deep windows; and leaning back in
it she tried to persuade herself that she felt a breath of cooler air.
Wraxall and Mrs. Dangerfield followed her, and they were joined almost
immediately by the doctor. Helga Dangerfield circled round the two
tables, halting for a moment or two to scan the cards. Then, saying
she had some letters to write, she left the room.

“The storm must be coming to-night,” Mrs. Brent asserted, as a faint
puff of sultry air momentarily stirred the curtain beside her. “It’s
been banking up all day; and I’m sure it can’t keep off much longer. I
can feel all my nerves atwitch.”

Wraxall bent forward in his chair and scanned the heavy clouds.

“I’m not up in your weather-signs,” he said, “but it does seem to me
that there’s a shake-up coming. I should certainly judge we’d have
rain soon. I should say we’re in for a regular water-spout if those
clouds burst overhead. It will be wet.”

The doctor was examining Mrs. Brent’s face with an interest more
friendly than professional.

“Nerves?” he asked kindly.

She nodded.

“A dose of bromide? Quieten them, and give you a chance to get to
sleep. I can take my car down and make it up for you in ten minutes,
if you’d like it.”

Mrs. Brent thanked him with a smile; but she nodded dissent to his
suggestion.

“No,” she answered, “I don’t believe in running away from things. I
loathe thunder; but I’m not so feeble as all that. I’d much rather
take it as it comes.”

The doctor was about to say something when she stopped him with a
gesture and bent forward to the window, listening intensely.

“What bird was that?” she asked.

“I heard nothing,” said the doctor.

“Listen!” she motioned for silence, and they sat with ears strained.
“There! Didn’t you hear it?”

“No, nothing,” said the American.

“There it is again!” Mrs. Brent held up her hand for a moment. “It’s
stopped now. Didn’t you hear it, Anne?”

Mrs. Dangerfield shook her head.

“You always forget that the rest of us aren’t gifted with super-normal
hearing, you know.”

“Well, I heard it quite distinctly. It’s down yonder in the trees near
the Pool, I think.”

“Nobody else heard it, at any rate,” said the doctor. “You must have
remarkably sharp ears, Mrs. Brent. Now I begin to see why you dislike
thunder so much. It must be a perfect torture to a person with your
acute hearing. I withdraw my suggestion about a sedative. Nothing
short of morphia would keep you asleep in a storm, I’m afraid.”

“Well, I haven’t come to that yet,” Mrs. Brent retorted. “And I prefer
to keep what nerves I have, rather than wreck them further with drugs.
One can always stand a thing if one makes up one’s mind to it.”

“One thing I won’t stand,” said Mrs. Dangerfield, “and that’s the heat
in this room. Let’s go outside and see if we can’t find a cooler spot
to sit.”

The doctor rose and followed her as she crossed the room; but Mrs.
Brent seemed to reject the idea. She remained in her chair and
Wraxall, after rising, sat down again. For a time Mrs. Brent remained
silent, gazing out at the inky sky; but at last she turned to the
American.

“Well, Mr. Wraxall,” she demanded in a low voice which could not reach
the bridge players. “Are you still confident of getting what you
want?”

The American’s face betrayed nothing of his thoughts.

“I couldn’t say. No, it’s too early yet to say. I’ll admit that it’s a
stiffer thing than I expected. It’s certainly stiffer than I supposed.
But I haven’t tried to get it yet. I think I’ll wait till I have
tried, before I say what I think. But I thank you for what you told
me. I take that kindly of you. If you’d said nothing I’d have made a
mistake, likely enough. I hadn’t quite a grip of the situation; I’ll
say that frankly.”

Mrs. Brent scanned his imperturbable features for a moment and then
changed the subject.

“Rather a contrast between those two bridge-tables over there. Mrs.
Tuxford plays well; but she kept the stakes down. The play at the
other table seems to me little better than gambling. I’ve heard
‘Re-double’ twice in the last round or two; and Miss Cressage isn’t
half as good at bridge as Mrs. Tuxford.”

Wraxall looked at her with a faint admiration showing on his face.

“You don’t miss much, Mrs. Brent. That’s a fact. I’ve been watching
them play, but it hadn’t struck me. You’re quite right. But I suppose
they can stand it.”

“I suppose so. No business of mine,” retorted Mrs. Brent, shortly.

She turned slightly round in her chair, however, and studied the faces
of the players at Eileen’s table. Things were going very badly for the
girl. She was the worst of the four, and in addition, her nerve was
going, and her play was growing more and more reckless. That night she
had sat down with the pleasant feeling that in an hour or two she
would have won something more towards the payment of these bills which
still hung over her. But somehow, this evening, things were different.
Instead of Conway Westenhanger, she had Eric Dangerfield as a partner;
and without quite realising what the change meant she had found that
the games did not run so smoothly as they had done on the night
before. Once or twice she had miscalculated, and her partner had left
her to fend for herself. A run of bad cards had eaten still further
into her nerve.

And then, suddenly, she had realised how much she had already lost;
and she had begun to play more wildly in the hope of recouping
herself. The gains of the previous evening were gone by now, and she
was steadily running up a score against herself. She began to feel the
heat of the night; and her play became more erratic.

Mrs. Brent studied her face for a round or two without comment. Then
she turned to the American with an expression which might almost have
been an ill-concealed sneer.

“If either of us was a philanthropist, Mr. Wraxall, I think we could
find a field for our talents by persuading that girl to stop before
she makes matters worse. She’s making a fool of herself.”

“I judge so from her looks. I don’t play bridge. It seems to me to
lack the complete psychological satisfaction that poker gives. And it
hasn’t the swiftness of faro. It’s too slow and not brainy enough. I
regard it as a dud game.”

Mrs. Brent turned her back to the bridge-table.

“Well, if we worried ourselves about other people’s troubles we should
have a full life of it,” she said. “As I told you the other night, I’m
not a professing philanthropist.”

The American made no direct reply.

“You’ve got a headache?” he asked.

“Frightful. It’s the storm, I think.”

“I judged so from your eyes. If you’ll excuse me, I’ll go off and
leave you. You won’t be anxious to talk when you feel that way.”

Mrs. Brent gloomily acquiesced. Wraxall rose from his chair and left
the room. As soon as he had gone she turned again slightly and resumed
her study of Eileen Cressage’s face. The girl was evidently slipping
into desperation; and her play had degenerated into mere gambling on
long chances. Once or twice she won heavily; but the run of luck was
persistently against her. Mrs. Brent shifted her attention to Eric
Dangerfield’s face; and from it she could learn that he was growing
uneasy. Once or twice he endeavoured to take the play out of his
partner’s hands; but he had nothing like the skill of Conway
Westenhanger. More often than not, his attempts at rescue ended in
worse disaster. Occasionally he glanced at the score and knitted his
brows; but his play continued steady. He had not lost his nerve, like
the girl.

After a final disastrous round, the bridge-party completed the rubber
and came to a close. Mrs. Brent saw Eileen Cressage lean over and
watch Morchard as he added up the long array of figures; and the
girl’s perturbation at the sight of the scoring-block was written
plainly in her face. Morchard was slow in arithmetic; and as he
laboriously totted up column after column, the distress deepened and
the girl went whiter. At last he jotted down the total and worked out
the cash equivalent.

“That’s—let’s see—two hundred and six pounds eighteen, isn’t it?” he
said, putting down the scoring-block and pencil.

“What did you say? I didn’t quite catch,” said Eileen. Two hundred
pounds! She knew they had been losing steadily; but this was far
beyond her worst anticipations. She couldn’t possibly pay that, even
if she were given a year to do it. What had persuaded her to play at
all? She felt her throat dry and mechanically moistened her lips.

“Two hundred and six pounds eighteen, I make it,” repeated Morchard.
“Not bad, partner.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton glanced keenly at the girl’s face.

“Well!” she said, shortly, pushing her chair back slightly as though
to show that the time had come to settle.

Eileen pulled herself together with an effort.

“I’m afraid I haven’t enough money to pay just now,” she said. “I
suppose you won’t mind letting it stand over for a little?”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton brought her eyes back to Eileen’s face. Her thin
lips were compressed for a moment; and when she spoke, her voice was
hard:

“I always settle my own bridge-debts immediately; and I expect other
people to do the same.”

Eileen flushed. After all, she had had fair warning. Mrs. Caistor
Scorton had said the same thing the night before, when she had been
the loser.

“I’m sorry, but I haven’t as much money as that on hand.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton reflected for a moment.

“Well, you can give me a cheque, if you like,” she conceded. “But,
frankly, I prefer to keep these things on a cash basis always. It’s a
fad of mine; and I don’t like to break my rule.”

The ungraciousness of the tone was evident; but Eileen cared little
for that. All she wanted was to escape the humiliation of a public
explanation. A cheque would furnish a way out of present difficulties.
She could hand it over; and then, later on, she could explain the
state of affairs to her creditor without an embarrassing audience.

“Wait a moment and I’ll get my cheque-book,” she said, rising from her
chair. As she turned, she noticed Morchard’s eyes fixed upon her and
there seemed to be something speculative in his gaze. In his glance
she read that he understood the state of affairs perfectly; but she
saw no sign of sympathy in his face. Instead, there seemed to be
calculation.

She climbed the great staircase, traversed the long corridor which ran
at the back of the main building, and turned down the passage leading
to her own room in the rear of the house. In a moment or two she had
found her cheque-book, scribbled a cheque, and was back in the
drawing-room. So eager was she to avoid an argument in public that she
hardly gave a thought to the possible results of her action.

“£206 18s.—is that right?” she asked, passing the slip of paper across
to Mrs. Caistor Scorton.

Mrs. Scorton picked up the cheque, glanced at its face to make sure
that it was in order, and then put it away. Eric Dangerfield watched
her, with an uncomfortable expression, then he turned to his other
opponent:

“Give you a cheque, if you don’t mind, Morchard,” he said. “I’ll let
you have it to-night or to-morrow—now, if you’re anxious.”

Morchard was still studying Eileen’s face.

“Oh, any time will do,” he said, absently. “There’s no hurry.”

The second bridge-table completed a rubber and the players rose from
their seats. Mrs. Brent, in her turn, left her chair and approached
the group.

“I think it’s growing closer every minute,” she said. “Would anyone
care to walk in the gardens for a while? I’m going out.”

Morchard seized on the suggestion.

“That’s a good idea. Care to come down to the Pool, Miss Cressage?
It’s sure to be cooler there, beside the water.”

The girl assented listlessly. Her mind was still busy with the
disaster of the evening. What a fool she had been! But calling herself
names would hardly help now. She would have to find some way out of
the affair; and the raising of £200 was beyond her resources
completely. Perhaps Mrs. Caistor Scorton wasn’t so bad as she seemed.
Possibly she might turn out to be rather a decent person; these
surface-hard people often were like that. Of course the money would
have to be found eventually; but if time were given, something might
be done.

The group moved out on to the terrace in front of the house. Freddie
Stickney attached himself to Nina Lindale, and they went off together
down into the gardens. Eric Dangerfield, looking worried, approached
his uncle, and they followed the other two. Morchard and Eileen
descended the steps and turned off into one of the side-alleys. Mrs.
Brent turned to the remaining two:

“Mr. Morchard’s quite right, I think,” she said. “If there’s any
coolness to be had to-night, it will be down at the Pool. Shall we
go?”

She looked up at the inky sky with some distrust. Mrs. Caistor Scorton
turned back towards the door.

“It looks very like a downpour,” she reflected. “I don’t think I’ll
join you. I have to write a note to my bankers and one or two other
things, and I may as well do that now.”

“Oh, very well,” said Mrs. Brent, placidly. “Perhaps you’re right.
Will you risk it, Mrs. Tuxford?”

They moved off in the track of the two Dangerfields, leaving Mrs.
Scorton to return to the house.

“I think we might walk a shade faster,” Mrs. Brent suggested in a
moment or two. She seemed anxious about something. “I hate moving
about at all on a night like this; but I’d really give a good deal for
a breath of fresh air. It’s like an oven up there at the house; but
down beside the water it ought to be cooler. Really, if this spell
doesn’t break soon I shall simply take French leave and go off in the
_Kestrel_.”

She pointed towards the bay, where one or two of the yacht’s lights
flickered upon the water. Mrs. Tuxford nodded understandingly.

“I know how you feel—nerves all ragged. And you’ve got a headache,
too. Don’t bother to talk. Let’s walk along quietly and see if the air
about the Pool will do you any good.”

By winding paths they came at last to the edge of the belt of trees
which encircled the sheet of water. Just before they emerged from the
shadows, Mrs. Brent pulled up and glanced round the Pool. On the
further bank, some forty yards off, she caught a glimpse of Eileen
Cressage’s dress lit up by the moonlight, and a flash of Morchard’s
shirt-front as he turned a little.

“I think we’ll stop,” said Mrs. Brent to her companion. “It’s cool
enough here under the trees.”

She fell into a listening attitude:

“Did you hear that bird-call?”

Mrs. Tuxford strained her ears, but heard nothing. Mrs. Brent excused
herself with a gesture:

“I always forget that my hearing is sharp. Can’t you even hear those
people talking over there? Sound carries far across water.”

Again Mrs. Tuxford listened intently.

“Nothing but a murmur,” she said.

Mrs. Brent held up a finger.

“There! That bird-call . . . lovely. Do you mind if I listen to it?”

Mrs. Tuxford nodded acquiescence and watched her companion listening
intently to something which she herself could not catch. Her eyes
wandered to the two figures across the Pool; but they were standing
half in the shadows and she could make very little of them.

Just at that moment, as it happened, Morchard was engaged upon a
psychological problem very much after his own heart. He had played
bridge that evening with a steadily growing satisfaction. To him,
Eileen Cressage’s face had been an open book; and he had read without
difficulty the thoughts which passed through her mind.

“That girl’s in difficulties,” he had ruminated, as the game
progressed. “I know the signs. She’ll not be able to pay. I know the
Scorton; she’ll want her money. Little Cressage hasn’t a blue cent. I
like these dark-haired, pale-skinned girls, especially when they’re
rather shy, like her.”

The incident of the cheque had been clear as glass.

“The Scorton won’t collect much on that, or I’m mistaken. It’ll come
back with ‘Refer to Drawer’ on it, sure enough. And the girl knows it,
too. She’s just staved off trouble for a few hours. That is, unless
someone else foots the bill. Two hundred’s only a flea-bite.”

He had wandered down to the Pool beside Eileen without saying very
much. That would give her time to think over things and to realise
what a hole she had got herself into. Card-debts were things one
simply had to pay. At one point only he had broken the silence, and
then it was to relate an anecdote of Mrs. Caistor Scorton, an anecdote
which brought out to the full the hardness of that lady’s character
where money was concerned. When they reached the shore, he glanced
round to see that no one was within ear-shot. The figures of Mrs.
Brent and her companion, hidden in the belt of trees, escaped his eye.

“Sorry you had bad luck to-night, Miss Cressage. Cards were rather
against you people.”

Eileen Cressage’s voice was not quite under control. She tried to
steady it and speak lightly.

“I suppose one must expect that, now and again.”

“Oh, yes. Your turn last night; ours to-night. Yours again to-morrow
night, very likely. We’ll give you a chance for your revenge then.”

Eileen thought of her worthless cheque and shivered a little. No
matter how things went, there would be no bridge for her next night.

“I don’t think I shall play to-morrow,” she said, hesitatingly. “I’m
rather tired of bridge.”

“Oh! Sorry to hear that. Quite looked forward to it.”

“No; I shan’t play any more.” She found her lip quivering and
stiffened it with an effort. Morchard had caught the movement in her
moon-lit face. “Shall we go back to the house?”

“Wait a moment, Miss Cressage, I’ve something to say.”

She turned back towards him and he studied her features for a moment;
then he continued, as though he had just made a discovery:

“Now I guess what’s wrong. I knew something was up. You’re hard up?
Isn’t that it?”

Eileen’s face was sufficient answer. Morchard’s voice became
sympathetic.

“Really hard up? That’s beastly.”

Then, watching her keenly, he appeared to make a fresh discovery:

“That cheque you handed over to-night, no good, eh? Overdrawn your
account? Well, well.”

He drew closer to the girl.

“Look here, Eileen, this is an awkward affair. You’ve got yourself
into a bad hole. I know the Scorton. She’ll send that cheque off
to-night to her bank—no, first thing to-morrow morning. I could see it
in her eye. She suspects it’s a dud. And by to-morrow night she’ll
know it hasn’t been met. And then she’ll make a row. She’ll make the
devil of a row. I know her.”

He paused, letting this sink in.

“You’ll need to get out of it somehow.”

The girl’s defences were down completely. This brute, with his mottled
face and close-set eyes, had seen the whole affair. If he knew,
everybody else might know also. He had told her nothing she had not
guessed for herself; but the mere putting of it into definite words
made it seem a worse business than ever. She made an unconscious
gesture, as though trying to ward off the catastrophe. Morchard grew
more sympathetic.

“Now, listen, Eileen. There’s an easy way out. Two hundred’s nothing
to me; I can easily spare it. I’ll lend it to you. You can pay it back
any time you like; I shan’t miss it. That’s all right now. All your
worries over! Come to my room to-night and I’ll give you a cheque. You
can go up to town to-morrow, first thing, and pay it into your bank in
time to meet that cheque you gave the Scorton.”

Before the girl could reply Mrs. Brent’s voice sounded across the
water:

“Miss Cressage!”

Eileen started at the call; and, turning, she saw Mrs. Brent and Mrs.
Tuxford coming from among the trees.

“Thank goodness, they’re too far off to have heard what we were
saying,” she reflected, measuring the distance with her eye.

Then she called in reply; and she was further relieved to find it
difficult to make them hear what she said.

“Have you ever seen a glow-worm?” Mrs. Brent’s voice came faintly over
the Pool. “Come round and look at this one I’ve found.”

Eileen turned away from Morchard and made her way round the water’s
edge to where the two women were standing. Morchard followed her
sullenly, his anger at the interruption being evident, though he was
doing his best to conceal it.

But when Mrs. Brent led them back into the spinney and tried to point
out the glow-worm, it had vanished.

“That’s a pity,” she said, glancing side-long at Morchard as she
spoke. “I really thought I had it and could pick it up again easily
enough.”

She poked about for a moment or two among the grass at the edge of the
little wood.

“No, I’m afraid it’s escaped. Creatures do get away, unless one keeps
an eye on them. And it was such a pretty little thing, too.”

This time her face was in the moonlight, and there was no mistaking
the mockery in her expression as she turned to Morchard.

“Well, my headache’s a little better. Shall we go back to the house?
These wood-paths won’t let us walk four abreast, I’m afraid. Mr.
Morchard, you and Mrs. Tuxford had better go first.”

She stood aside to let them pass. Then, before following them, she
whispered a few words to Eileen. The girl nodded and they went up the
path in the track of Morchard and his companion. As they came into the
gardens, Mrs. Brent noticed Wraxall and old Dangerfield in one of the
alleys. The American was talking earnestly, while his host listened to
him with his usual polite aloofness. Again Mrs. Brent’s face betrayed
a flash of mockery; but she made no remark to the girl at her side,
and together they passed on towards the house.

She had been quite correct in her reading of the situation. Wraxall,
despite her friendly warning, had made up his mind to approach their
host with a direct offer for the Dangerfield Talisman. He had shown
considerable tact in his manner of introducing the subject, for Mrs.
Brent’s hints had not been lost upon him. But, just as she had
predicted, he met with an uncompromising refusal.

“Part with our Talisman, Mr. Wraxall? It’s out of the question!”

The American tried to work round the flank of the defence.

“One moment, Mr. Dangerfield, before you make up your mind definitely.
Perhaps I could say something to alter your views. I’m a collector.
I’m not the keeper of a public museum. I want your Talisman for
its own sake. I want it for itself and for myself. I shouldn’t
put it in a show-case with a ticket on it. No one would know that
you had transferred it. The matter would be entirely between
ourselves—completely private.”

Rollo Dangerfield halted for a moment in his stride.

“And how would you propose to account for its disappearance from
Friocksheim, then? Anyone looking at our empty cabinet would know that
it had gone.”

Wraxall had his solution ready.

“A replica, of course. That could be made in a few days, by these
modern electro-plating methods; and paste stones could be put in,
instead of the real ones. It would serve well enough. It wouldn’t be
spotted, Mr. Dangerfield, if you kept it out of people’s hands. You’d
never talk; I wouldn’t talk; no one would ever know.”

Rollo Dangerfield turned in the moonlight.

“That’s a very ingenious idea, Mr. Wraxall. But the Talisman is not
for sale.”

The American apparently had not quite given up his project.

“Well, think it over,” he begged. “No one would ever know. It would
only be a case of borrowing the Talisman for a day or two, to get the
replica made. Then you put the replica into the cabinet; I get the
Talisman, and nobody’s any the wiser. Think it over again.”

Rollo Dangerfield seemed deep in thought. He made no reply, and they
walked on once more. On the horizon a faint flicker of sheet-lightning
illumined the sky, heralding the coming storm. As they turned back
towards Friocksheim, the moon slipped behind the edge of the
thunder-cloud.



Chapter IV

Douglas Fairmile, coming down to breakfast next morning, found Nina
and Cynthia already at table.

“Good morning, Douglas,” Cynthia greeted him. “You don’t seem quite
your usual bright self to-day. A trifle heavy-eyed and even
duller-looking than usual. Did the thunder keep you awake?”

“Rather! My sensitive temperament, you know. High strung and all that.
The least thing puts me off my sleep.”

Cynthia looked him over with mock sympathy.

“Ah! Neurasthenic, no doubt. It’s hard lines on these healthy looking
people, Nina; their nerves are all fiddlestrings really, but they get
no sympathy because they look so frightfully robust. Observe, however,
the leaden eye, the trembling hand. He’ll be biting a bit out of his
tea-cup if we don’t manage to soothe him.”

“I’d just love to have you for a nurse if I went sick,” Douglas
affirmed. “And the toast, please, since you happen to be so handy to
it. Thanks. I suppose the storm passed quite unnoticed at your end of
the house?”

“No, indeed,” Nina said, nervously. “It gave me the fright of my life.
I had to creep away to Cynthia’s room for comfort. I hate thunder,
especially when it comes near.”

“It was near enough last night. One of the trees in the garden was
struck. You can see it from the door.”

“That must have been the peal that drove me out of my wits, then. I
knew it was close at hand.”

“Well, it’s cleared the air, that’s one good thing,” said Douglas,
glancing through the window at the big white clouds sailing in the
blue. “All the stuffiness has gone now. This is going to be a day for
careful enjoyment, too good to waste on mere reckless frivolity.”

He looked sternly at Cynthia.

“I do love Friocksheim,” said Nina, irrelevantly. “It’s a place where
one can do just as one likes and no one bothers about things.”

“What about borrowing the _Kestrel_ and going up the coast until the
afternoon?” suggested Cynthia. “Mrs. Brent would let us have it if we
asked her.”

Douglas glanced again through the window.

“Hullo! She’s gone!”

“What a nuisance!” Cynthia looked over the empty waters of the bay.
“Mrs. Brent said something last night about going off in the yacht,
but I didn’t think she meant it. She’s evidently taken the _Kestrel_
herself, though. That notion’s knocked on the head.”

The door opened to admit Freddie Stickney. Even as he came in, they
could see that he was preparing a sensation for them. His prying
little eyes ran over the group, estimating the character of his
audience.

“Heard the latest?” he demanded, importantly.

“Spare us the usual preliminaries, Freddie,” Douglas implored. “Don’t
drag out the agony. Flop right in at the deep end. If it’s an
earthquake in Frogsholme or any other little thing like that, why just
give us the simple tale in the fewest words.”

Freddie Stickney seemed to feel that his sensation was big enough to
let him follow Douglas’s advice. He came to the point without more
ado.

“The Talisman’s been stolen,” he announced, with a certain
undercurrent of malicious enjoyment in his voice. “That’s a nasty
knock for the Dangerfields.”

For a moment his three hearers failed to take in his news.

“The Talisman?” exclaimed Nina. “You don’t mean to say somebody’s
taken it?”

Freddie confirmed his statement with a smile.

“Are you sure about this, Freddie, or is it just some rot you’re
making up?” demanded Douglas.

“Quite sure about it. I’ve been to look at the cabinet where it’s
kept, to make certain; and it’s gone. No sign of it.”

Cynthia looked distressed.

“That’s bad business, isn’t it? Poor Mr. Dangerfield! The Talisman’s
the thing he values most in the world, I should think. He’ll be
fearfully cut up.”

“Oh, he’ll be all that,” agreed Freddie, unsympathetically. “But it’s
a beastly nuisance. Friocksheim will be swarming with police and
detectives—probably unofficial ’tecs as well. The Dangerfields will do
anything to get the thing back again, you can bet. It’ll be most
unpleasant for all of us. They’ll expect us to turn out our suit-cases
to see that none of us has taken it.”

“Well, what’s the harm in that?” inquired Cynthia. “They can do what
they like, so far as I’m concerned. The main thing is to get the thing
back again. I suppose they’ll get it back in a day or two?”

Douglas looked doubtful.

“Depends who’s taken it, Cynthia. There’s no saying. But perhaps it
hasn’t been stolen at all,” he ended, hopefully. “It may just have
been taken away to be cleaned or something like that.”

“Wrong, there,” said Freddie, with a self-satisfied air. “It’s been
stolen. I managed to worm that out of the butler.”

“Oh, did you?” Douglas’s expression showed what he thought of
Freddie’s methods.

“Yes. At least, I got enough from him to put two and two together.
There’s been a theft of some sort, whether it was burglary or stealing
from inside the house.”

“What a horrible business!” Nina was evidently upset by the affair.
“It’ll be a terrible shock for the Dangerfields, won’t it? I do hope
they get it back again almost at once. I wish it hadn’t happened. I do
wish it hadn’t happened!”

Freddie stared at her in a patronising way.

“I should worry over it. It’s really the Dangerfields’ own fault for
taking no precautions. Fancy leaving the thing standing about in that
open cabinet, ready for anyone to lift! One can’t have much sympathy
with them, after all.”

“I think I can spare a little,” Cynthia commented, icily.

Freddie had a further tit-bit which he had held in reserve.

“Oh, I don’t think so,” he said. “Why, they never took the trouble to
insure the thing. That’s inexcusable carelessness. Really, they seem
to deserve all they’ve got.”

Douglas leaned forward in surprise.

“Do you mean to say, Freddie, that the thing wasn’t insured?”

“So I believe,” asserted Freddie. “I got it out of the butler before
he realised what he was saying.”

Douglas passed this explanation without comment.

“Why, the thing’s impossible! The stones in the Talisman are worth
more than £50,000. Nobody would dream of keeping a thing like that
uninsured!”

“Well, you’ll find I’m right,” said Freddie, weightily. “And that’s
why we shall be flooded out with police and detectives. Obviously
they’ve simply got to get it back. Nobody cares to lose £50,000.”

Nina was plainly taken aback by the figure.

“I should think not. I’d no idea it was worth so much. What a loss for
poor Mr. Dangerfield.”

“Well, he’ll have to stand it, if the thing isn’t recovered,” said
Freddie, philosophically.

“It makes me frightfully nervous,” admitted Nina. “Just think,
Cynthia, that burglar may have been prowling about near us in the
night. It gives me the creeps!”

“Oh, that’s all over now,” Cynthia soothed her. “You’re too nervous,
Nina. If it has been a burglar, he’s not in the least likely to come
back again. You can sleep quite quietly so far as that goes.”

Freddie hastened to play the part of consoler.

“I don’t think you need worry. There’s nothing much else in the house.
The Dangerfields haven’t a big stock of jewellery. The Talisman was
about the only thing worth taking in the whole place.”

“Well, I’m ever so sorry about it,” Nina reaffirmed. “It makes
everything different to-day. Friocksheim won’t be the same, with this
hanging over it. How could one enjoy oneself when this has happened?”

“Oh, one does what one can,” Freddie reassured her. “Worrying won’t
help.”

“That’s right, Freddie,” commented Douglas, contemptuously. “Have your
principles, and act according! The stern, unbending Roman touch, eh?”

“Where’s Mrs. Caistor Scorton?” inquired Freddie.

He was evidently anxious to find a fresh auditor for this news.

“She was just finishing her breakfast when I came down,” volunteered
Nina. “I think she’s gone out.”

Freddie was plainly disappointed by this information.

“She must have been down a good deal earlier than usual,” he grumbled.
“Where’s Wraxall?”

“Not down yet,” said Douglas. “I expect the storm kept him awake like
the rest of us, and he’s been putting in some extra sleep. He’ll be
down later on.”

He glanced at the two girls, and all three rose.

“Well, ta-ta, Freddie. We’re leaving you in the best of company, so
you’ll excuse us if we go.”

Freddie’s expression showed that he saw the irony without appreciating
it.

“See you later,” he snapped, going on with his breakfast as the others
filed out of the room.

On that day Wraxall awoke later than usual and dressed with a certain
leisureliness. He had been about during the small hours of the
morning; and even after he went to bed, some time had elapsed before
he managed to fall asleep. On reaching the breakfast-room at last, he
was not altogether pleased to find Freddie Stickney the only other
occupant.

“Thunder keep you awake too?” demanded Freddie, as Wraxall took his
seat. “Cleared the air, anyway. That’s one blessing.”

“I sat up and watched the storm,” said the American, shortly.

“Frightful racket, wasn’t it?” Freddie inquired.

Wraxall nodded vaguely and attacked his breakfast.

“Heard the great news?” persisted Freddie, not to be baulked.

Wraxall, who preferred to breakfast peacefully, looked across the
table with an expression of the very faintest interest.

“News?” he asked. “No. I haven’t seen a paper yet. My doctor tells me
it’s better to read later on. He advises me to concentrate at
breakfast-time. I share his views. I believe he’s right.”

Freddie ignored the hint.

“Oh, it’s not in the papers. It’s a Friocksheim tit-bit, exclusive.
The Dangerfield Talisman’s been stolen!”

If he expected to read anything in the American’s face, he was
disappointed. Wraxall’s lean countenance betrayed no emotion of any
sort, not even surprise. He continued to masticate stolidly for a few
moments, as though excluding all extraneous ideas. Freddie felt that a
good item of news had been wasted.

“How do you know it’s been stolen?” inquired Wraxall, at length.

“Well, it’s gone, at any rate.”

Wraxall glanced across the table.

“That’s hardly the same thing, Mr. Stickney. If I drop a dollar in the
street without noticing it, the dollar’s gone; but it isn’t
necessarily stolen. When I send a clock to be cleaned, it’s gone too;
but the clock-maker isn’t a thief for all that. Let’s be accurate, if
_you_ please.”

This was hardly the reception Freddie had anticipated.

“Well, it’s gone, at any rate,” he repeated. “And if it’s gone,
somebody must have taken it. It didn’t walk off by itself. And if
anybody took it, that’s theft, isn’t it?”

Wraxall appeared to consider this proposition with some care before
replying.

“No,” he replied, after a pause. “No, I’d hardly care to go so far as
that. Hardly. Mr. Rollo Dangerfield may have taken it—that wouldn’t be
theft, since it belongs to him. Somebody may have borrowed
it—borrowing isn’t theft. No, it seems to me you’re rather apt to jump
to conclusions, Mr. Stickney. I can’t follow you to that length.”

Freddie Stickney flushed slightly. This confounded Yank was evidently
presuming to pull his leg. Freddie contented himself with a
reiteration of his former remark:

“Well, it’s gone, at any rate.”

As he said it, his eyes swept the American’s face, and for an instant
he seemed to catch a glimpse of something going on behind the mask.
Wraxall was evidently perturbed and his eyes showed that he was
thinking hard, though his face gave no clue to the subject which
occupied him.

Freddie relapsed for a time into sulky silence, and Wraxall was able
to continue his meal undisturbed. From time to time, Freddie’s beady
eyes ranged round to the American’s face; but its set expression
betrayed nothing to him. Freddie began to contrast the reception which
Wraxall had given to his news with the outburst of sympathy for the
Dangerfields which had come from Douglas and the girls.

“Something very fishy about this fellow,” he thought to himself. “One
would almost think it wasn’t news to him at all. And why is he so
anxious to make out that it isn’t a case of theft? That’s very rum.”

Freddie chewed the cud of this idea for a minute or two; but at last,
feeling the lack of conversation to be too great a strain, he tried
another opening.

“Very few at breakfast to-day.”

The American glanced round the empty table, but made no audible
comment.

“Three of the party went off first thing this morning,” Freddie
continued. “Mrs. Brent’s away in the _Kestrel_. Didn’t wait to say
good-bye to me.”

At last a gleam of interest crossed the American’s face.

“Mrs. Brent’s gone? Now, I’m sorry to hear that, Mr. Stickney. I shall
miss her. She’s a most understanding person. I’m sorry. But perhaps
she’s only gone for the day?”

Freddie Stickney had to admit ignorance.

“She didn’t leave any message about when she’d be back. And Eileen
Cressage went off by the first train. But she’ll be back to-night,
most likely. So will young Dangerfield. He’s gone, too.”

Wraxall nodded, but said nothing. Freddie was emboldened to proceed.

“Funny—their going just when the Talisman’s disappeared—isn’t it? The
Dangerfield Luck gone, and all of them clear out at once. Like rats
leaving a sinking ship, what? It seems rum, doesn’t it?”

The American’s brief spell of interest in Freddie’s conversation came
abruptly to an end. This time there was no doubt about it. Freddie’s
latest news item must have started a fresh train of thought in
Wraxall’s mind, and he was devoting his whole attention to following
it out. Freddie attempted to break in once or twice, but received no
encouragement beyond absent-minded nods which might have meant
anything; so at last he rose and left the room.



Chapter V

After Freddie Stickney had closed the door behind him, Wraxall frankly
abandoned any pretence of being interested in his food. He pushed back
his chair slightly and seemed to concentrate his whole mind for a time
upon some intricate problem.

“I’d better see the old man as soon as I can,” he said, half aloud, at
one point in his train of thought. “The first thing to do is to see
how the land lies. It’s a tight position.”

But a final solution of his problem evidently evaded him; and when he
got up and went in search of his host, it was clear that he still
remained in doubt about something.

“I’ll get it over, at least,” he said to himself.

In spite of his age, Rollo Dangerfield was an early riser, compared
with some of his guests. He had breakfasted an hour before, and
Wraxall found him in the morning-room, engrossed in a newspaper. As
his guest came in, Rollo put the sheet aside and looked up.

“Terrible storm last night, Mr. Wraxall. I hope it didn’t keep you
awake through half the night.”

“I like storms,” the American assured him. “I sat up a good part of
the night to watch that one. It would have been a pity to miss it. I
enjoyed it—immensely. The effects were very fine at times, Mr.
Dangerfield, very fine indeed. A magnificent spectacle.”

Rollo Dangerfield seemed relieved that his guest had suffered no
inconvenience.

“I wish everybody could say the same,” he said. “Poor Mrs. Brent
didn’t share your enthusiasm, I’m afraid. She’s peculiarly sensitive
to electrical conditions—always has been so. Her nerves seem to go all
to pieces in a storm, and I think that one last night affected her
badly. She went off in the _Kestrel_ this morning before any of us
were up, and I expect she’ll stay away until she gets back to normal
again.”

The American paused a moment or two before replying.

“I’m sorry to hear that. She didn’t strike me as a nervous type. I
should have said she was very well balanced, if you’d asked my
opinion.”

“Each of us has his own special weakness,” said the old man,
phlegmatically. “Some people can’t stand cats, for some reason. I
dislike house-spiders intensely myself, though I can’t give you any
grounds for my aversion. In Mrs. Brent’s case, it seems to be thunder
and lightning. A storm shakes her completely.”

Wraxall let the subject drop. Old Dangerfield puzzled him at this
moment. Of course the English had the knack of concealing their
feelings; but he had expected something different in Rollo this
morning, if the story about the Talisman were true. He resolved on a
direct attack.

“I met young Stickney at breakfast. He said something about the
Talisman.”

Old Dangerfield let his newspaper slip from his hand as though he were
tired of holding it.

“Freddie? Oh, Freddie can be trusted to know all about everything.
He’s often right, too, quite often. Yes, the Talisman’s gone.”

The old man’s voice was completely indifferent; he might have been
discussing some matter of no especial concern, for all the interest
that showed in his tone. The American was taken aback. These English,
he reflected, don’t give much away. Here was a man who had lost
overnight the thing that he evidently valued as the first among his
possessions; and yet he showed less emotion than he might have done if
a cat had gone astray. Wraxall’s opinion of Rollo Dangerfield went up
considerably. There was a dignity behind this indifference which
impressed him deeply. No fuss, no excitement to be seen. The thing was
gone; but the old man could hold himself in. His guests wouldn’t be
disturbed by him. Everything would go on as usual at Friocksheim.
Rollo Dangerfield evidently carried the courtesy of a host to the
extreme.

“That’s a big loss,” said Wraxall, slowly. “But I expect you’re
counting on getting it back. It would be difficult to dispose of. It
would certainly be hard to sell. Still . . . aren’t you sorry you
didn’t close with my offer last night?”

Rollo Dangerfield turned an inscrutable face to his guest.

“Sorry I didn’t sell the Talisman while I had it? No, it never was for
sale. The matter didn’t arise.”

The American persisted.

“I suppose the police have some clue?”

The old man shrugged his shoulders slightly.

“The police have nothing to do with it. How could they have a clue?”

Wraxall was frankly astonished.

“You haven’t called them in? Why, I should have thought the very first
thing to do would be to get them to work while the scent was fresh?”

A faint shade of irritation showed in Rollo Dangerfield’s eyes, the
first sign of emotion the American had seen. But when he spoke, his
voice was as indifferent as before.

“Why should we call in the police? The Talisman will find its way home
without their help. Would you bring the police among your guests, stir
up trouble, make everyone uncomfortable with suspicions and
cross-questioning? No, Mr. Wraxall, we shan’t need the police at
Friocksheim. I told you so, before the Talisman disappeared, and you
obviously didn’t believe me. But you see now that you were mistaken; I
meant what I said.”

The American was shrewd enough to see what had given offence. Old
Dangerfield resented the slight on his veracity much more than the
loss of the Talisman. He made amends frankly.

“Quite right, Mr. Dangerfield. Honestly, I thought you were just
leading us on, that night. I took it that you were pulling my leg. It
seemed to me that perhaps it was one of your English jokes, just put
out to see if the stranger would swallow it. We often do that
ourselves, over there. But I see you mean it, right enough, now.”

Rollo Dangerfield reassured him with a faint smile.

“I see your point of view. I ought to have thought of it in that
light.”

Wraxall considered for a moment or two before speaking again.

“I think I see what’s in your mind,” he said, going back to the
earlier subject. “You’ve reason to suspect somebody in particular—one
of the maids, perhaps—and you don’t want a fuss?”

“I don’t suspect any of the maids—or any of the servants,” Rollo
Dangerfield replied instantly. “That’s quite out of the question. I
can tell you why. We have a number of old habits at Friocksheim, and
fortunately one of them has enabled us to clear our servants of any
suspicion in this affair.”

He took out his case and lit a cigar before continuing.

“The servants’ quarters are all in the west wing of the house, and
there is only one door communicating between their section and the
other part of the building. That door has a special lock, of which
only the butler has a key, and it is his duty at half-past eleven
every night to see that that door is secured. After that, no servant
can get into this part of the house without his knowledge.”

“And the butler himself?” demanded the American.

“The butler’s great-grandfather was born on the estate and for four
generations we have known absolutely everything about the family. This
man has been in our service since he was a boy, and a more absolutely
honest man you couldn’t find anywhere. You may put him completely out
of your calculations, Mr. Wraxall. I say that definitely, because the
man can’t speak for himself. Not a trace of suspicion could attach to
him. Now are you satisfied?”

Wraxall nodded his acquiescence. Then he asked a further question.

“How did you hear that the Talisman had gone?”

“The butler told me this morning. His first business is to go round
the house after he has unlocked the communicating door. When he went
into the Corinthian’s Room he noticed that the Talisman case was open,
and the jewel was gone. He came at once and told me.”

“And you suspect nobody, then?”

Rollo Dangerfield raised himself slightly in his chair and looked
round directly at Wraxall’s face. For the first time, the American saw
a keenness in the old man’s blue eyes, though their expression was
inscrutable.

“No, I suspect nobody. I have no evidence, and I do not wish to
collect any. The Talisman will be back in its place within a week; and
that is the only important thing in the case. For all I know, the
whole affair may be a practical joke. Some of these young folks may
have taken it into their heads to test the Dangerfield legend.”

His eyes scanned the American’s features; but Wraxall betrayed nothing
under the scrutiny. Rollo Dangerfield pulled at his cigar before
continuing.

“I can imagine one of these youngsters playing a practical joke like
that. Take away the Talisman and see what old Dangerfield will say!
It’s quite possible that somebody”—he glanced again at the
American—“may even now be wishing he had left the thing alone and may
be looking for a chance to replace it under the bell. It’s an awkward
thing to have in one’s possession—even innocently. Well, they can
easily put it back again, if they wish to do so. Nobody’s watching the
Corinthian’s Room.”

A faintly sardonic expression crossed his face.

“Don’t distress yourself unduly about the Talisman, Mr. Wraxall. It
will come home quite safely in the end; you may take my word for
that.”

With a gesture as though asking permission, he picked up his newspaper
again. Wraxall accepted the tacit dismissal and wandered out into the
sunlit gardens. The interview had given him a good deal to think
about, apparently. He avoided the other guests and spent a
considerable time in going over old Dangerfield’s words, so far as he
could remember them.

“I wonder,” he said to himself at last. “I wonder if the old man
suspects anything. One or two of these remarks might have been
directed to my address, though he was clever enough to give them an
inoffensive turn. If he really suspects me, it looks like being a
pretty kettle of fish. It certainly looks like that.”

He thought it tactful to absent himself for the rest of the day,
taking his car and visiting some of the local antiquities which he
wished to see. It was dinner-time before he met his fellow-guests once
more.

Eileen Cressage had returned, and Westenhanger came into the room
immediately after her. As they sat down, Freddie Stickney’s eyes
travelled round the table, obviously counting the number, and a
certain disappointment appeared in his face when he found only twelve
persons present. Eric Dangerfield and Mrs. Brent were still away.

“You and Mr. Westenhanger came up by the same train, didn’t you, Miss
Cressage?” asked Mrs. Dangerfield.

Westenhanger caught the question which Eileen had missed.

“Yes. I happened to run across Miss Cressage just as she was coming
out of Starbeck, the jewellers. We had just time to get to the
station.”

Freddie Stickney’s sharp ears caught the careless remark.

“Starbeck’s?” he said, lifting his voice to make it carry down the
table. “That’s a convenient firm. They’ll give you a reasonable
advance on any little bit of jewellery you don’t happen to need for a
time. Sort of superior brand of West End Uncle, aren’t they? I’ve
dealt with them once or twice myself and always found them generous.”

Freddie was quite shameless in money matters. But his deliberately
pitched sentences reached Eileen Cressage’s ears; and Freddie, keenly
on the look-out, noticed that the girl flushed uncomfortably.

“That shot went home,” he reflected, complacently. “One can always get
the information one wants if one goes about it tactfully. She’s been
doing a bit of quiet pawning this afternoon. That’s interesting. I
wonder what she put away in store. She never wore any jewellery here.”

He ruminated on this problem for a time, keeping his sharp eyes on the
girl’s face; but nothing further of interest fell into his net during
the meal.

As they passed into the drawing-room after dinner, Mrs. Caistor
Scorton picked up a telegram addressed to her which was lying in the
hall. At the sight of it, Morchard’s face lighted up with interest and
he examined her closely while she read it. He edged himself up to
Eileen and put a question in a low voice:

“The Scorton’s got her telegram about your cheque. Is it all right?”

“Quite all right, thank you,” said the girl, coldly.

She moved away from him immediately, and as she sat down, Conway
Westenhanger came up.

“Have a game at bridge, Miss Cressage? They’re making up a table and
I’ve reserved a place for you.”

“No, thanks. I’d rather not play.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton passed close to them and Eileen made a gesture to
catch her attention.

“You found my cheque all right, Mrs. Scorton?”

Westenhanger, to his surprise, detected more than a tinge of irony in
the question. Mrs. Caistor Scorton seemed taken aback for a moment;
but she recovered herself almost at once:

“Oh, quite all right, quite all right,” she confirmed shortly, and
passed on to the bridge-table.

Eileen Cressage knitted her brows slightly as she looked after her. At
any rate, she had got out of that difficulty. Morchard had been quite
right. The woman had obviously sent the cheque off to her bank and
asked them to wire if it had been met. That apparently inevitable
scandal had passed over safely. She glanced across at Morchard and an
angrier flash came into her eyes. She knew what sort of a person he
was, too.

Freddie Stickney drifted over and sat down between her and
Westenhanger.

“Heard the news, you two? The Talisman’s out of print, it seems. No
copies available for the public. Somebody’s taken a fancy to it and
simply lifted it. That’s a fine end to all the Dangerfield talk, isn’t
it?”

With a certain ill-suppressed maliciousness, he gave them all the
information he had collected during the day.

“Just as well you were away last night, Westenhanger,” he wound up.
“You’re clear of suspicion. But all the rest of us are in it up to the
neck. Servants exonerated without a stain on their character. Strong
suspicion attaches to every guest. That’s how the land lies.”

“Oh, indeed, Freddie,” said Westenhanger. “Then, if we must suspect
somebody, we may as well begin with yourself. What about it? Anything
you say will be used against you at the trial, without regard for age
or sex. Where’s my notebook?”

“It’s all very well for you,” protested Freddie. “You’re out of it
all. But what about the rest of us? It’s a nasty idea to feel that the
person sitting next to you in this room may be a thief.”

Westenhanger looked him up and down for a moment before replying.

“If I were you, Freddie, I don’t think I’d begin flinging words like
‘thief’ about quite so early in the day. These things are apt to be
resented by some people. Isn’t there any other possible explanation?”

Freddie pondered for a while in silence, then he made a half-hearted
suggestion:

“It might be a practical joke.”

Westenhanger considered the idea and rejected it almost immediately.

“I shouldn’t like to have the taste of the man who played a joke of
that sort. Who’s your humorist? Douglas is the funny man of the
company, but Douglas wouldn’t play a trick of that sort on anyone.
That’s certain. Morchard hasn’t that kind of mind. The American has a
sense of humour, but not that sort, I’m sure. You don’t attribute it
to one of the girls, do you? No? Well, then, that leaves us with . . .
let’s see . . . with Mr. Frederick Stickney as the only possible
culprit. I don’t think much of your taste in humour, Freddie, and
that’s a fact.”

“All the same,” said Eileen Cressage, “I’d prefer it to be a case of
practical joking rather than the other thing. Perhaps it will all come
right and we shall find the Talisman back again in a few days, just as
Mr. Dangerfield said.”

Freddie had recovered from Westenhanger’s attack.

“Well, I’m going to find out who did it,” he declared. “As things
stand, we’re all under a cloud. I’m going to get the whole lot into
the billiard room later on, if I can, away from the Dangerfields; and
I shall put it to them straight that each person ought to account for
his doings during the night. Nobody could object to that.”

He glanced at the girl for support and was surprised to see her flush
and turn away as though to conceal her face.

“I don’t think you’ll be altogether popular if you start that kind of
thing, Mr. Stickney,” she said.

Freddie’s bright little eyes fastened themselves on her face; and his
well-trained mind automatically set to work to draw inferences from
what he saw. As his friend had said, Freddie’s inferences always
tended to discredit somebody or something. He had sense enough,
however, to leave his conclusions unspoken.

“It’s a silly idea, Freddie,” said Westenhanger, abruptly.

He also had noticed the girl’s flush; but the only inference he had
cared to draw was that Freddie was making her uncomfortable.

“I can’t agree with you.” Freddie was emboldened by the girl’s
embarrassment. “I think everyone would be only too glad to exonerate
themselves from suspicion. We oughtn’t to be left under a cloud if we
can clear ourselves straight off. Decidedly not. I shall insist on it;
and I’ll point out what it will look like if anyone refuses.”

He got up and walked away from them without waiting for a reply.

Westenhanger looked across at Eileen and was puzzled by the distress
which he still found in her face.

“That little beast will make trouble unless he gets his way. Miss
Cressage, I think I’ll have to attend his proposed inquest myself. It
seems to be the occasion where an impartial and disinterested person
might be useful.”

Eileen glanced at his face for a moment. He was relieved to find that
she met his eye squarely and showed no signs of flinching.

“I think that would be a good plan, Mr. Westenhanger.”

“Well, I suppose we shall have to go through with it if he gets his
way. And he’s pretty sure to arrange it, you know. That suggestion
that it will look black if anyone refuses is pretty sure to rake in
most of them, and the rest can’t stand out after that, even if they
wished to.”



Chapter VI

“Now,” said Freddie Stickney, “I think we can begin.”

He had been as good as his word. Each guest had been approached by him
apart from the rest; and the appropriate hint, insinuation, or appeal,
had been skilfully employed. They had all come, willingly or not, and
Freddie had them at his mercy. His beady little eyes, bright as those
of a mouse, glanced from face to face in an attempt to read the
expressions. Already, he judged, most of them were uncomfortable; and
the production of discomfort was Freddie’s strong card. He cleared his
throat gently in preparation for his opening statement of the case as
he saw it; but just at that moment the door clicked and Westenhanger
stepped into the room.

“Look here, Westenhanger, you can’t come in just now,” protested
Freddie, who augured little good from the engineer’s presence. “This
is a private affair.”

Westenhanger stared at him with admirably acted surprise.

“Are you getting up a charade to amuse the Dangerfield family, or
something like that? I don’t think much of the notion, but I’m quite
game to join if all the rest of you are in it. Go ahead; don’t let me
interrupt.”

He selected a chair near Eileen Cressage and sat down. Freddie bit his
lip in vexation. Westenhanger’s entrance had taken him aback; he had
not bargained for the presence of anyone except those who came under
suspicion. For a moment he thought of arguing the point and contesting
Westenhanger’s right to be there at all; but a glance at the
engineer’s face showed him the uselessness of any such attempt. Quite
obviously Westenhanger meant to sit through the business.

“Get on with it, Freddie,” directed Douglas Fairmile, impatiently.
“You can’t expect us to sit here all night merely to look at you, can
you?”

Freddie cleared his throat again, and launched into his exposition;
but the two interruptions had flustered him a little and he failed to
make his points tell as heavily as he had hoped.

“You all know the Dangerfield Talisman’s disappeared. The burglar
alarms were all found correctly set in the morning, so obviously
nobody could have got into the house from the outside. That limits the
thing down to the people in the house. I think that’s plain.”

“Quite plain,” commented Westenhanger. “Self-evident, in fact.
Proceed, Freddie.”

“The inmates of the house can be divided into three . . .”

“Just like ancient Gaul, eh?” Douglas explained.

Freddie scowled at the interruption and repeated his phrases.

“The inmates can be divided into three groups. First, there’s the
Dangerfields themselves; second, the servants; third, the
guests—ourselves. The Dangerfields don’t come into the matter. There’s
no reason why any of them should take away the Talisman. Then it’s a
fact that none of the servants can be suspected. At least, so the
Dangerfields say, and they ought to know. That leaves ourselves. One
of us must have taken it.”

He glanced round the group in the hope that, even at this early stage
in the inquiry, someone might betray himself. Morchard was leaning
back in his chair, lazily following the movement of a smoke-ring which
he had blown by accident. Mrs. Caistor Scorton was obviously bored.
Nina and Cynthia were trying to repress smiles—evidently the results
of some whispered aside by Douglas which Freddie had failed to catch.
As for Wraxall, even an expert poker-player could have made nothing of
his inscrutable mask. Eileen Cressage looked white and tired; and
there was something in her face that encouraged Freddie to think that
here he had found the weak point in the circle. Quite evidently she
dreaded something to come, but she seemed to be hoping that the danger
might yet be averted. Westenhanger, of course, showed nothing, since
he was the solitary individual whose innocence was beyond doubt.

“Now there are two possible explanations of the Talisman’s
disappearance,” Freddie continued. “One is, that it’s due to a
practical joke. We all know how the Dangerfields boast about taking no
precautions with the Talisman. Somebody here may have wanted to give
them a lesson about that. That’s a possibility. But if that’s the
explanation, I think we have something to say. Joke or no joke, the
thing’s gone, and until it turns up again, every one of us is under
suspicion of theft. Everyone of us!”

He glanced round the faces once more, but still no one betrayed any
definite sign of guilt. Eileen Cressage’s expression puzzled him. She
looked up and caught his eyes for a moment, but it was he who turned
away first, so manifest was the dislike in her glance. Quite evidently
the girl had something to conceal, and Freddie grew more determined to
bring it to light, whatever it was.

“Just a moment, Mr. Stickney!” the American interrupted as Freddie was
about to continue. “Let’s be accurate, if _you_ please. You said
‘Everyone of us.’ That’s not correct. Mr. Westenhanger can’t be
included. He couldn’t have had any hand in the affair, on your own
showing.”

The engineer acknowledged the American’s statement with a quick smile.
Wraxall, evidently, was a kindred spirit, bent on spoiling Freddie’s
little effects.

“Very well,” snapped Freddie. “Then it’s one of us here, excluding
Westenhanger.”

Rather to Westenhanger’s surprise, Morchard joined the critics.

“Wrong again,” he declared, weightily. “Mrs. Brent was in the house
that night; and she isn’t here. I agree with Mr. Wraxall. Let’s be
accurate.”

“Well, well,” snarled Freddie, “have it as you like. The main point is
that everyone here, bar one, is under suspicion. And whether it’s a
practical joke or not, it looks like plain theft. And that’s a very
unpleasant business, very unpleasant to us all—to myself at any rate.
It’s very unfair. And if this thing isn’t cleared up as soon as
possible it’ll leave a permanent stain on our characters. You know how
people talk.”

“I hear you, Freddie,” interjected Douglas, and Freddie was annoyed to
see Nina Lindale’s lips twitch in a repressed smile.

“It’s no laughing matter,” he said, indignantly. “Far from it.
Somebody in Friocksheim took the Talisman, that’s certain. Now all I
suggest is that we should each voluntarily account for our time during
the period when the thing was stolen. That’s no hardship to anyone.
I’m quite glad to do it myself; and I’m sure everyone else in my
position will be just as glad. If anyone here took the Talisman, let
him say so now and we won’t need to go any further.”

He fixed his eye on Douglas Fairmile as he spoke, more by accident
than design.

“Meaning me?” inquired Douglas. “Try again, doggie. You’re barking up
the wrong tree. I never touched the thing in my life.”

Freddie ignored the interruption.

“Nobody admits they did it as a joke?” he demanded. “Then it’s much
worse. It’s theft, pure and simple. We owe it to ourselves to clear
the thing up. At any rate, that’s my view, and I think it will be the
view of everybody in my position to-night.”

To Freddie’s surprise Morchard came to his assistance.

“There’s something in that,” he admitted. “I doubt if it’ll lead to
anything; but since the thing’s been allowed to go so far, I don’t see
any harm in letting anyone who wishes it, do as you suggest.”

Freddie, looking at Eileen Cressage, saw her shoot a glance at
Morchard; but as she turned her head to do so, he could not see her
expression. When she turned back again he had no difficulty in reading
consternation in her face. She detected that he was watching her and
endeavoured, with very little success, to assume an indifferent
attitude. Westenhanger also had caught the by-play, and his face
clouded.

“Suppose you begin, then,” Freddie suggested to Morchard.

Morchard seemed rather annoyed at being directly attacked, but he gave
a nod of acquiescence.

“Most of us went upstairs together, you remember. That would be about
a quarter to twelve or so. I didn’t look at my watch, so I can’t make
it closer. Anyway, it must have been about then. We’ve always been
pretty early at Friocksheim. Then I undressed and went to
bed—midnight, say. And I woke up as usual in the morning. That’s all.
Help you much, Stickney?”

Freddie ignored the query and glanced round to see if anyone else
would volunteer. Mrs. Caistor Scorton sat up in her chair.

“I went to my room as usual—about a quarter to twelve, as Mr. Morchard
says. Some people came up a little later. I heard steps in the
corridor and the sounds of doors shutting. There was some talking in
low voices and more doors shut. Then the whole house was quiet. I
looked out of the window for a short time, wondering if the storm was
coming at last. Then I heard a noise as if someone had stumbled on the
mat outside my door. I opened the door quietly and looked out. It was
Miss Cressage. She was carrying a lighted candle and by the time I got
the door open she was a good distance down the passage. I didn’t call
after her, but just shut my door again. I looked at my watch to see
how late it was, and I remember it was a quarter past twelve. After a
time I undressed and went to bed. The next thing I can remember is
waking up as usual.”

Westenhanger was completely taken aback by this evidence. What could a
girl be doing, wandering about the house at that time of night? Almost
without thinking, he swung round on Mrs. Caistor Scorton and put a
question.

“You’re sure it was Miss Cressage?”

“Quite sure,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton, composedly. “She was wearing
her dressing-gown and bedroom slippers. No one else has a silk
dressing-gown of that shade.”

Eileen Cressage had gone very white during Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s
evidence, but she made no comment. Westenhanger, looking at her
momentarily, saw that she had been completely surprised. At the same
time, her attitude suggested that she might have something in reserve
though she was not very confident about it. Freddie Stickney in his
turn put a question to Mrs. Caistor Scorton.

“You said she was ‘going down the passage.’ What does that mean?”

“Miss Cressage’s room is beyond mine. She was going away from it when
I saw her.”

“Oh, I see,” said Freddie. “You mean that she was going along the
corridor in the direction of the bachelor’s wing?”

Westenhanger saw Eileen start in her chair at this elucidation by
Freddie, but she evidently held herself in with an almost physical
effort.

“Why on earth doesn’t she say something?” he wondered to himself. “I’d
stake my money that she’s straight, and yet she lets that little swine
go on unchecked with his insinuations. I can’t understand it.”

Whether she wished it or not, Mrs. Caistor Scorton had changed the
whole atmosphere. Up to the moment when she began to speak, the affair
had been handled in an almost frivolous spirit. Freddie Stickney had
been making a fool of himself, and no one liked him sufficiently to
feel troubled by that aspect of the matter. Even the Talisman theft
had not weighed over heavily as a personal thing, for nobody had any
formulated suspicions in his mind. But Mrs. Caistor Scorton, in half a
dozen sentences, had brought them face to face with a new problem, and
the silence of the girl made it difficult to find innocuous
explanations. Something ugly had reared up in the midst of what, to
most of them, had been little more than a joke. Eileen’s white,
strained face, and her attitude of a creature at bay, had taken away
all humour from the situation. Freddie Stickney had achieved a
masterpiece in the creation of discomfort. Westenhanger could see
Douglas Fairmile’s face, and in its expression he read the twin of his
own feelings.

The American broke the silence, before its awkwardness grew too
obvious.

“You mean that Miss Cressage was going towards the head of the main
stair-case, I suppose?”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton nodded without speaking.

“I understand it better when it’s put in that way,” said Wraxall,
bluntly.

Eileen Cressage threw him a glance in which Westenhanger recognised
gratitude. The American had taken the edge off the situation, to some
extent, by his intervention. But a moment’s reflection showed
Westenhanger that Wraxall had merely turned the matter into a fresh
and difficult channel. Down the stair-case was the way to the
Corinthian’s Room and the Talisman.

Before anyone else could interpose comments, Wraxall again threw
himself into the breach:

“My tale’s more elaborate than these two. It’ll take longer to tell, I
expect. I went upstairs to bed with the rest of the party, but I
didn’t undress just then. I felt that storm coming up, and I like
storms. I wouldn’t miss one. So I just sat at my window. My room’s the
second on the corridor in the bachelor’s wing, as you go along from
the stair-case. Yours is the first, isn’t it, Mr. Westenhanger?”

“Yes, I’m next you.”

“Your room was empty, that night, so anyone going along the corridor
had to pass my door before they got to any other room. I was wide
awake, at my window. I’ve pretty sharp ears, and I was listening hard
for the first of the thunder. I heard nobody pass my door. I’d have
heard anyone in the corridor. Make a note of that, Mr. Stickney. It
seems important.”

He broke off and glanced contemptuously at Freddie.

“At almost exactly half-past twelve,” he went on, “the storm broke. I
looked at my watch at the first thunder-clap. It was a good storm.
I’ve seldom seen better. But from my point of view it was rather a
failure, just then. I couldn’t see well enough out of my window. I was
losing half of it. So I got up—I hadn’t undressed—and I took my candle
with me because I didn’t know where the corridor switches were. Nor
the switches in the hall below. I’d failed to make a note of them.”

He paused for a moment as though expecting comments, but no one said
anything.

“I went downstairs. I wanted to get outside if I could. I didn’t mean
to lose any of that storm. At the main door, I had a glance at the
burglar alarm. It’s the same pattern as I use in my own house, so I
put it out of action and opened the door. It was quite dry outside
then. The rain hadn’t started. So I went out.”

Westenhanger was struck by an idea.

“Just a moment, Mr. Wraxall. That meant you left the door open behind
you, didn’t it? Could anyone have got in without you seeing him?”

Wraxall nodded approval.

“No, nobody could have got in. I had my eye on the door all the time.
I was never away from it. To continue: The whole house-front was dark
when I went outside, except for some windows in the little tower above
the Corinthian’s Room. They were lit up.”

“That’s Eric Dangerfield’s room,” interjected Westenhanger.

“Quite right. You’ll hear more about that when I come to it, but let’s
take things as they happened. Almost as soon as I got outside there
was a terrific flash—blinding. And then the father and mother of all
the thunder-claps. I found in the morning it had struck one of the
trees near by. That was at twelve thirty-nine p.m. exact—I looked at
my watch by the next flash which came immediately after.”

“That must have been the peal that frightened me,” Nina interjected.
“It was the loudest I ever heard.”

“Within a minute or two,” continued Wraxall, “a light went up at the
end of the east wing.”

“That was in my room,” confirmed Cynthia Pennard.

“We can ignore it for the present, then,” said Wraxall. “I’m just
giving you what I saw. About five minutes later—that would be about
ten minutes to one by rough reckoning—a light appeared in the
Corinthian’s Room——”

“Ah!” exclaimed Freddie Stickney. “This is getting hotter.”

“Only another of your mare’s nests, Freddie,” explained Douglas. “It
was I who switched that on.”

Wraxall continued without taking any notice.

“I saw a light in the Corinthian’s Room and—as I was about to say when
Mr. Stickney cut in—in the library which leads out of the Corinthian’s
Room. Five minutes later, say about one o’clock in the morning, the
rain drove me indoors. I bolted the door and put on the alarm again.
As I came back into the hall, someone switched on the lights, and I
found young Dangerfield there. I said something about having been out
looking at the storm and he nodded. Then I went upstairs and back to
my room. The best part of the storm was over, so I went to bed,
perhaps round about quarter past one. Like the other people I woke up
as usual in the morning. That’s all I can remember at present.”

The American’s narrative, whether intentionally or not, had brought a
relaxation of the tension in the room. By his purely objective
treatment of the matter he had produced an unconscious change in
outlook among his audience. Westenhanger was relieved to see that even
Eileen’s face had taken on a less strained expression. She was
anything but at her ease, yet there was something in her face which
suggested that she had passed the worst.

Douglas Fairmile was the next to volunteer an account of his doings
during the night.

“I’m no great hand at exact times and seasons,” he began. “You’ll just
need to take what you get. And I’m no amateur in storms, either. If
lightning leaves me alone I’ll never trouble it. But that storm forced
itself on my notice—and not in a quiet insinuating way, either. To be
frank with you, it kept me awake. After a while I got fed up listening
to it, so I thought I might as well read, since I couldn’t sleep. So I
padded off downstairs to get a book from the library. Mr. Wraxall says
it was just about one o’clock, and he knows more about it than I do.
The only thing that strikes me as important in the affair is that when
I switched on the lights in the Corinthian’s Room, I happened to
notice that the Talisman was still in its place. So that means it
disappeared after one o’clock in the morning.”

He glanced at Eileen as he spoke. Westenhanger felt a wave of relief
at this evidence, since it seemed to clear the girl completely; but on
looking at her, he was surprised to see that she showed no sign of
elation. Her expression hardly indicated that she had appreciated the
force of Douglas’s statement.

“I picked up a book,” continued Douglas, “and just as I was leaving
the room, Eric came down his stair. We exchanged a few bright remarks
about the storm—nothing worth recording—and I left him writing
something at the table in the library. I must have got through the
hall—I didn’t bother to switch on the lights—before Mr. Wraxall came
inside again. And so to bed. And may I repeat, Freddie, lest you
failed to catch my whisper last time, that I did _not_ steal the
Talisman as I was passing. Make a note of that. It seems important, as
Mr. Wraxall says.”

“I’m afraid my story doesn’t help much,” said Nina Lindale, shyly,
“and it makes me out to be a terrible coward. But I’ve always been
nervous of thunder since I was a kiddie. I didn’t mind the beginning
of this one—at least I tried not to mind it. But then there came a
terrific flash and a perfectly awful peal of thunder, and my nerves
went to pieces altogether.”

“That must have been the time the tree was struck, I expect,” said the
American. “Say twenty minutes to one?”

“Oh, don’t ask me what time it was. I had other things to think about.
After that, I felt I simply couldn’t be alone for another minute. I
got up and went next door into Eileen’s room. I wanted company at any
price, even if I had to knock up half the house to get it. But Eileen
wasn’t there. Her bed hadn’t been slept in. So I thought perhaps she
was in the same state and had gone to someone else’s room. I rushed
along to Cynthia’s bedroom and burst in on her. And after that I
didn’t dare to go back to my own room again, so I just stayed with her
all night.”

“That accounts for my light being switched on, you see, Mr. Wraxall,”
said Cynthia to the American. “I’ve really no idea of what time it was
that Nina came along to me; but it was just after that awful
thunder-clap; and I expect that was the one you made a note of. Nina
and I fell asleep after a while, once the storm had gone down. I don’t
know what time that was, either. Do you generally fall asleep with
your eyes on your watch, Mr. Stickney? It seems very hard to fix any
definite times for things which happen at night.”

Freddie smiled in a superior fashion.

“As it happens, I did look at my watch in the middle of the night. I
went to bed at the same time as the rest; and went to sleep, too,
which is more than some of you seem to have been able to do. I slept
through the storm. But later on the wind got up. My window-blind began
to flap badly; and that woke me up. I looked at the time to see if it
was worth while getting out of bed and fixing it, or whether it wasn’t
worth while. That was at twenty minutes to three, I remember
distinctly.”

He glanced at Cynthia triumphantly. She took up the implied challenge
at once.

“Yes, Mr. Stickney, you’ve given us _one_ time. But you haven’t told
us when you went to sleep. It seems to me you’re no better than the
rest of us, really.”

Freddie ignored her and continued his tale.

“I made up my mind to get up and fix the blind. That was at twenty
minutes to three, as I said. While I was at the window, I looked out.
My room looks right across the court-yard to the windows of Miss
Lindale’s room. As I was standing at the window, a light went up in
the windows next to Miss Lindale’s.”

He paused, and Westenhanger saw by his expression that he hoped to
spring a surprise. Freddie swung round suddenly upon Eileen.

“That’s your room, isn’t it, Miss Cressage?”

The girl’s face showed that this was the piece of evidence which she
had been dreading; but she managed to keep her voice under control as
she answered.

“My room is next Nina’s, and I did switch on my light sometime in the
small hours. I didn’t look at the time, but no doubt you’re quite
right about it.”

Again the atmosphere had grown tense. Westenhanger swiftly scanned the
girl’s face, and he was distressed to see how haggard she seemed. “She
looks just like a trapped animal,” he thought in the first flash. Then
some unidentifiable trait in her expression brought a second idea to
the fore. “She looks as though she knew she’s in a very tight corner;
but she expects to pull out of it somehow in the end. She’s pretty
nearly desperate—but not quite.”

Freddie, having drawn general attention to Eileen’s attitude,
contented himself with completing his story.

“I looked out of my window for a short time after fixing the blind so
that it wouldn’t flap again. After that I went back to bed again and
fell asleep almost immediately. I waked up at the usual time.”

He waited for a moment and then added:

“Now if we had Miss Cressage’s story we should have had everybody’s
version of the affair.”

Eileen rose to her feet, and they could see that she was trembling,
though she kept herself under control. Westenhanger instinctively
leaned forward in his chair. If the girl had some trump card in her
hand, now was the time to play it. If not, then undoubtedly Freddie
Stickney had put her in a bad position. She had left her room at a
quarter past twelve. Freddie’s evidence pointed to her coming back
again at twenty minutes to three in the morning, and switching on her
light as she re-entered her room. What could any girl be doing out of
her bed at that time of night, and for two hours at a stretch? And,
undoubtedly, from the evidence of Douglas, the Talisman might have
disappeared during the time she was moving about the house. No matter
where she had been, it looked a bad business; and yet Westenhanger
could not help feeling that there must be some explanation.

“That girl’s straight,” he repeated to himself. “She’s over-straight,
if anything, by the look of her. And yet she’s got herself into some
deadly hole or other.”

Then an idea suddenly flashed into his mind.

“Suppose she’s shielding someone else! I never thought of that! But it
would need to be a pretty strong motive that would make her take the
thing as she has taken it.”

Before he could follow out this train of thought, Eileen’s voice broke
in on his reflections.

“I really haven’t anything to say. It’s quite true that Mrs. Caistor
Scorton saw me in the corridor after twelve o’clock. I didn’t know she
had seen me then. And it’s quite true that I switched on my light when
I came back again. I don’t know what time it was then, but probably
Mr. Stickney is quite right. It doesn’t matter much. I wasn’t near the
Talisman during the night. That’s all I can tell you.”

Her control suddenly broke, and she moved hastily towards the door.
Douglas Fairmile sprang up and opened it for her to pass out. As she
passed him, she could read in his face that he at least was quite
prepared to take her word.

As the door closed behind her, the atmosphere of strain grew more
intense. The realisation that they had narrowly escaped a nasty scene
weighed upon the group; and no one seemed eager to break the silence.
At last Westenhanger, feeling that the first note struck was of
importance, swung round on Freddie Stickney. He ignored the events of
the last few moments completely.

“Well, Freddie,” he said, coldly, “your inquest doesn’t seem to have
led to much. I can’t congratulate you. Speaking purely as a bystander,
I can’t say that you’ve achieved anything. Take your own case. You
went to bed at some unspecified hour. You say you slept through that
storm. That’s quite possible; though some of us might have difficulty
in believing you, if I can judge from the accounts I’ve heard of the
thunder. At any rate, you tell us you waked up shortly before three
o’clock and were actually out of bed at that time—_just the period
when the Talisman was stolen_. You were up and about for some
unspecified time. Then you went back to bed and fell asleep again.
Quite all right no doubt.”

His voice grew more incisive.

“But if you think you’ve cleared yourself of suspicion by telling that
tale, I may as well sweep away your illusions. If a detective were
working on this case, he’d simply ignore your whole yarn—except one
solitary point. He’d take Miss Cressage’s word that she switched on
the light in her room, and he’d believe you when you say you saw that
light go up. That’s the only point where there’s the slightest
confirmation. And Miss Cressage is the only person who could clear
you, if it happened to turn out that the Talisman disappeared about
three o’clock in the morning.”

He shrugged his shoulders contemptuously.

“You seem to have the foggiest notion of evidence, Freddie. Anyone
could have foreseen this sort of thing. Even a child would know that
at night, in a house like this, it’s almost impossible to establish a
decent alibi. Nina and Cynthia are the only two of you who have
established cast-iron alibis; and that was due to a pure accident—the
thunderstorm.”

“That’s true,” said Wraxall, before Freddie could reply. “That’s quite
correct, Mr. Westenhanger. Nobody could get an alibi under these
conditions, in the normal way. I quite agree with you that this little
playlet hasn’t been a success. By no means. I think we’d be well
advised to forget all about it.”

Douglas Fairmile laughed at the sight of Freddie’s expression; and
with that laugh, the tension was released again. Douglas’s mirth
seemed infectious, following so closely on the strain of the last
quarter of an hour.

“Well, I’m glad you can’t suspect me,” said Nina Lindale with a faint
smile. “I never thought a thunderstorm would clear my character. I
suppose I ought to be thankful.”

“Ditto!” added Cynthia, lightly.

Westenhanger returned to the attack in a sardonic tone.

“One thing I noticed, Freddie: You didn’t go the length of denying
that you stole the Talisman yourself. An oversight, probably. Oh,
don’t trouble to do it now; it would look rather too much like an
after-thought. Besides, no detective would take your word for it—with
that look on your face.”

“‘Detected Guilt, or The Sinner Unmasked’—what?” jeered Douglas.
“Freddie, you’d make the fortune of a problem painter if he got hold
of you just now. ‘Did He Do It?’ That would be the title. Picture of
the wily fellow who takes charge of the whole investigation and then
leads all the sleuths on the wrong scent while he makes off with the
swag, eh? Priceless!”

The three men had turned the tables on Freddie, and he had the wit to
recognise the fact. The whole effect of his efforts had been nullified
by this last touch of ridicule, which made a special appeal after the
earlier tension. He nodded sulkily, as though admitting an error; but
he made no direct reply to Westenhanger.

Nina Lindale gave the signal for the company to break up.

“I’m off to bed,” she announced, unsuccessfully trying to conceal a
yawn. “I got very little sleep last night, and if I stay up any longer
I shall doze off in my chair.”

“That’s a sound idea, Miss Lindale,” said Wraxall. “I begin to
remember that I lost some sleep too, last night.”

Morchard and Mrs. Caistor Scorton joined the group which was moving
toward the door. Cynthia linked her arm in Nina’s and was turning away
when Douglas called her back and spoke to her in a low voice.

“What a thoughtful child it is!” they heard her say, in mock
admiration. “And did you imagine I hadn’t thought of that long ago?
Don’t worry!”

She hurried after her companion. Freddie Stickney, left alone with
Douglas and Westenhanger, shuffled for a moment or two and then
retired to the door.

“I’m going to bed,” he said, reaching for the handle.

“Right, Freddie,” said Douglas, making a pretence of consulting his
watch. “I’ve taken the time. Set your alarm clock every quarter of an
hour and jot down that you were in bed each time when you woke up.
It’ll be an invaluable memorandum if anything happens to go astray
to-night. Bye-bye. If you feel one of your ears burning, don’t fret.
It will probably be me saying what I think of your exploits.”

Freddie suppressed a snarl and went out. Westenhanger dropped into a
big lounge-chair and pulled out his pipe.

“Sit down, Douglas; it’s early yet.”

Douglas picked out a convenient seat, near enough to allow a
low-voiced conversation.

“I asked Cynthia to drop into Eileen’s room and tell her what we
thought of things. Couldn’t leave the girl imagining we believed she
was a wrong ’un, could we? And she might have thought that, cutting
off when she did. Cynthia was going to see her off her own bat, it
seems. Sound girl, Cynthia; she’ll do it tactfully. Some people might
make a bad break in a case like that.”

Westenhanger acquiesced silently, and filled his pipe before he spoke
again.

“Damnable business, that,” he said at last. “And if we’d stopped it,
there would have been some sort of scene. Everyone’s nerves were on
edge. Anything was better than that. But what actually happened wasn’t
so very much better after all. That girl was as near cracking up as
she could be. If it hadn’t been for her grit, we might have had a much
nastier affair on our hands.”

“One would like to wring Freddie’s neck, of course,” Douglas mused
aloud; “but that would mean a row. We can’t have rows. With luck, we
can stifle this business; but a row would make it anybody’s news.
Freddie gets off this time, I’m afraid.”

“He does. I’m sorry.”

“The infernal thing is that the little sweep’s right, you know,
Conway. We _are_ all under suspicion. I don’t suspect anyone
myself—not my line. But there’s no getting away from it. Someone did
take that damned Talisman.”

“Afraid so. The only hope that I have is that it may have been a
practical joke after all, and that the joker was afraid to own up.
Trusted to putting the thing back again without being spotted.”

“Possible, of course,” conceded Douglas. “But I can’t identify the
prize idiot.”

“Nor can I. Well, take the other thing and see if it leads you any
further—theft, I mean. I’m out of it, by pure luck. You’ve all the
money you want. Morchard has more than’s good for him. The Scorton
woman is rolling in it. I take it that the girls don’t come into
question?”

He glanced interrogatively at Douglas, who nodded his agreement.

“Then that leaves the American and Freddie as a residue. Know anything
about Wraxall, Douglas?”

“Nix, as I suppose he’d say. He’s a collector, of sorts, and rolling
in money, I’ve heard.”

“H’m!” said Westenhanger, pausing for a moment.

“Well, pass Wraxall,” he continued. “That leaves us with Freddie. I
don’t like Freddie. I’ve nothing against his morals, for I know
nothing about them. I do know he’s hard up, though. But I’ve been hard
up myself at times. That doesn’t necessarily make a black mark on
one’s record.”

“True,” Douglas agreed. Then after a few seconds he added: “Know the
Scots verdict _Not Proven_, Conway? ‘The accused was discharged with a
stain on his character. All saved, bar honour.’ That’s how you feel
about Freddie, perhaps?”

“I’m not very friendly. The way that girl was baited to-night was
enough to sicken any decent person. But there’s a difference between
feeling like that and calling the little beast a thief, you know.”

“Not Proven; that’s so.”

Westenhanger considered for a few moments as though he found it
difficult to choose words for what he had to say. At last he put down
his pipe.

“There’s one thing, Douglas—that girl has got to be cleared. We’re all
mixed up in _that_ affair, thanks to Freddie’s infernal manœuvres; we
can’t shirk responsibility. I don’t know what possessed her to go
roaming about the house at that time of night. Still less can I
imagine why she couldn’t tell us what she was after. But she’s a
straight girl, if ever I saw one, and we simply can’t afford to let
things rest as they are. I don’t want to know what she was doing—and I
don’t much care. But the only way to clear her is to find out who
actually did the trick. It’ll be a stiff business.”

Douglas looked serious.

“Stiff enough, if you ask me. If you want a Watson, I’m your man; but
you’ll need to supply the Sherlocking yourself. I simply haven’t the
brains for it. The whole affair is a complete mystery—and likely to
remain so, for all the help I could give.”

“I’m not hopeful,” confessed Westenhanger at once. “The only detecting
I ever did was guessing what cards were in my opponents’ hands. It’s
not so much I expect to get anything out, Douglas. I feel one has to
turn to and do what one can, or else I shouldn’t be comfortable. That
girl’s face wasn’t a happy sight to-night. It’s got rather on my
nerves, if you want to know.”

He took up his pipe again. Douglas said nothing, but his face showed
that he understood Westenhanger’s account of his feelings.

“What do you make of Wraxall?” Westenhanger demanded, abruptly.

“Decent soul, I thought. Backed us up well in the matter of sitting on
Freddie.”

Westenhanger made no comment. Douglas let him smoke in silence for a
while before inquiring:

“What do you think?”

“Wraxall was the only one of you who had a complete story ready to
account for all his doings during the night. That’s my impression
about Wraxall, Douglas.”



Chapter VII

Cynthia Pennard moved slightly to avoid a spot of light which had
crept across the cushions of her hammock until it reached her face.

“Douglas,” she said, lazily, “has a hippopotamus got a tougher hide
than a rhinoceros? I’d like to know.”

“I’ve heard them both well spoken of—highly commended, in fact. I’d
hate to draw an invidious distinction and cause trouble at the Zoo.
But why this lust for general information? It’s not like you.”

Following her glance across the broad lawn, Douglas caught sight of
Freddie Stickney sitting on the grass beside Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s
garden-chair. Cynthia turned her head again.

“That’s quite the thickest-skinned creature I ever heard of,” she
explained, “and I was only wondering which animal ought to come after
him.”

“Can’t you spend the day better than in thinking up insults to
rhinoceroses and hippopotami? They’d wilt with shame if they dreamed
you were putting them in Freddie’s class. No flies on Freddie, as they
say. Why so? Because they’d merely blunt their beaks if they tried to
get through his hide. His fair companion’s pretty tough on the
surface, too. Perhaps that’s why all the gnats have moved over here.
Suppose we disappoint ’em by going down to the tennis-courts?”

Cynthia slipped neatly out of her hammock, and they went off together.

There was more than a grain of truth in their comments. Freddie
Stickney prided himself—and justly—upon one knightly quality: he never
showed a wound. The most brutal snubbing left him quite unabashed.
Coming down to breakfast after the fiasco of his “inquest,” he had
encountered Eileen Cressage at the head of the stairs, and he had
insisted on chattering trivialities to her all the way down. At table,
his beady eyes had wholly failed to see the marked coldness with which
he was treated by everyone, and he took no notice of the fact that all
conversations into which he inserted himself were apt almost
immediately to fade out into silence. Only Mrs. Caistor Scorton seemed
to recognise his existence, and when breakfast was over, he had sought
her out on the lawns.

“What do you think about this affair of the Talisman, Mrs. Caistor
Scorton?” he demanded, as he sat down on the turf beside her chair.

Mrs. Caistor Scorton seemed to ruminate for some moments before
replying. Then she glanced shrewdly at Freddie. Evidently she thought
it worth while to draw him out.

“Oh, I don’t know, Mr. Stickney. I’m not clever, like you; and I can
make nothing of it, one way or the other. But I’d like to hear what
you think. You’ve been putting two and two together, I’m sure, and I
expect you’ve got a good idea of things.”

Freddie rose to the bait without hesitation.

“If it would interest you, I’m delighted to give you my inferences.
You’ve got all the facts already.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton nodded, but said nothing. Freddie corrected
himself immediately.

“No, I was wrong in saying that. I’ve been hunting out some more
evidence—things that didn’t come out last night. One or two points
seem to be important.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton became more alert.

“That sounds interesting, Mr. Stickney. I’d like to hear it.”

Freddie considered for a few moments.

“I was just trying to arrange it in my mind,” he explained. “The
easiest way will be to take each person in turn, and examine the
evidence we have about that person in particular. Take Eileen Cressage
first. I think it’s obvious that some of us know more about her
affairs than came out last night.”

He looked up into Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s face inquisitively as he
spoke, and his voice had a hint of interrogation in its tone. Mrs.
Caistor Scorton stared down at him unwinkingly.

“One would almost think you were connecting me with her, Mr. Stickney.
I hardly know her.”

“Well, correct me if I am wrong,” said Freddie, brightly. “I admit
some of it’s guesswork; but I believe I’m right. We’ll see. Now to
start with, she’s hard up. That’s common knowledge. People invite her
to their houses out of good nature, and she stays with them to save
money, living on the cheap.”

No one would have imagined, from Freddie’s semi-indignant,
semi-pitying tone, that this description accurately fitted his own
methods during part of the year.

“I believe that’s true,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton, in a judicial
voice. “It’s common knowledge, as you say. What next?”

“She lost a lot of money to you at bridge the other night.”

“That’s common knowledge too, Mr. Stickney. Everyone in the room knew
that. Are these your wonderful revelations?”

The quite perceptible ring of disappointment in her tone touched
Freddie on the raw. He was put on his metal, just as she intended.

“Wait a moment,” he begged. “Let’s take things as they come. She
didn’t pay you at the time? No. She gave you a cheque. I was watching
her face closely just then. I’m a bit of physiognomist, you know. It
was plain as print to me. That cheque was no good, Mrs. Caistor
Scorton.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton regarded him with a rather malicious smile.

“Indeed, Mr. Stickney?” She laughed. “Then how do you account for the
fact that the cheque was met when it was presented? I paid it in
immediately and my bank collected it at once.”

Freddie Stickney held up his hand, asking permission to interrupt her.

“Yes,” he said, rapidly, “I suppose the cheque was met next day. But
all the same, she hadn’t a spare £200 in the world that night. I know
the signs: you can’t deceive me. She hadn’t the cash that night. But
she had it next day. What happened in between?”

“How should I know?”

Freddie took no notice. His question had been merely a rhetorical one.
He continued, marking each point with emphasis.

“The Talisman disappeared; that’s what happened in between. And during
the night, we know that Miss Eileen Cressage was out of her room at a
time when the Talisman might have been stolen. There’s no denying
that, is there? And what happened first thing next morning? Long
before half of us were up, she went off to town. And where did
Westenhanger run across her in town? Coming out of Starbecks the
jewellers, the place where they’ll make advances on any little trinket
you’ve no immediate use for. And your cheque was met all right.”

He paused for a moment, and Mrs. Caistor Scorton looked down at him
curiously.

“You seem very good at putting two and two together, Mr. Stickney. Do
you enjoy it?”

Freddie seemed rather annoyed at the interruption. It ruined the
dramatic pause he had planned to make before his summing up.

“Of course I enjoy it,” he replied, rather crossly. “I like using my
brains. Well, there’s the case. It seems to me to need more explaining
away than we’ve had so far.”

“It’s very ingenious,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton, in a non-committal
tone, “but isn’t there some other possible explanation of things? One
mustn’t look at a thing from one side, too much, you know.”

Freddie was not a person who welcomed criticism of his pronouncements;
but he felt that his reputation as a man of ideas was at stake.
Swiftly his mind reverted to an incident of the previous night.

“There is another possible explanation, I admit,” he said, in a rather
grudging tone. “Morchard has plenty of money. A matter of £200 would
be nothing to him. Now he’s very keen on Miss Cressage’s looks. I’ve
watched him, and I know the signs. Perhaps the money came from him.
You said last night that when you saw her she was going towards the
bachelors’ wing.”

“I said nothing of the kind,” Mrs. Caistor Scorton interrupted
sharply. “I said she was going along the corridor.”

“Which leads to the bachelors’ wing, of course,” persisted Freddie.

“And to the main staircase. Besides, Mr. Wraxall said he heard no one
pass his door.”

“How could he?” demanded Freddie triumphantly. “You said she was
wearing bedroom slippers. She wouldn’t make a sound.”

“Do you know, Mr. Stickney,” Mrs. Caistor Scorton commented in a
colourless tone, “you seem to have an unwholesome mind, if I may say
it without offence.” Her voice became indignant. “You know precious
little about girls if you think Eileen Cressage would raise money in
_that_ particular way. I’m not talking about morality; I’m speaking of
fastidiousness. If you’d suggested Douglas Fairmile, it might have
been credible; but it’s quite beyond believing if you drag in Mr.
Morchard. She simply wouldn’t dream of it. There are some things a
girl of that type won’t do; and a cash bargain with Mr. Morchard’s one
of them.”

“Very well,” said Freddie, sullenly, “you can have the other
alternative if you prefer it.”

“It’s far more likely; I can tell you that,” declared Mrs. Caistor
Scorton, coldly.

“Well, let’s leave her alone and go on to the rest.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton nodded an abrupt consent.

“Wraxall’s the next on the list,” Freddie went on, recovering his good
humour in the eagerness of his dissection. “I’ve picked up some facts
about him too. He came here for one purpose, and one purpose only. Do
you know what that was? To get the Talisman for his collection. That’s
all he’s here for. Now I found out—no matter how—that on the night of
the storm he approached old Dangerfield and offered to buy the thing.
Offered a gigantic price for it. It didn’t come off. They wouldn’t
sell. So there he was, knowing he’d failed to get what he wanted. You
know what these collectors are? Sort of monomaniacs on their hobby.”

“Are you suggesting that Mr. Wraxall took it? Absurd!”

“I’m not suggesting anything. I’m simply marshalling the evidence.
What is there? We know Wraxall was out and about in the house for the
best part of the night. What made Eric Dangerfield come down from his
room? Perhaps he heard Wraxall wandering round near the foot of his
stair and frightened him off the first attempt on the Talisman.
Perhaps Wraxall came back again and had a more successful try. All we
know is that the motive was there; the opportunity was there; the
theft was committed. Draw your own inference.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton seemed to have recovered her earlier mood.

“Oh, I’m not so clever as you are, Mr. Stickney. I’m quite content to
hear your own views. Let’s take the next person on your list.”

“Take Douglas Fairmile,” continued Freddie, quite restored to good
humour by the scrap of flattery. “My deliberate judgment is that
Douglas is not guilty. First, there’s no motive. Douglas has any
amount of money; he doesn’t need the Talisman for the sake of turning
it into cash. Second, he hasn’t the initiative to carry through a
thing like that. He’s just one of these would-be funny fellows. No, in
my opinion, it wasn’t Douglas.”

“I agree with you,” concurred Mrs. Caistor Scorton. “Let’s pass on.”

“Morchard’s the next. Same thing. No motive. No evidence. Morchard
didn’t take it.”

“Anything to say about Mrs. Brent, Mr. Stickney?”

“Ah,” said Freddie importantly. “I have a piece of fresh evidence
about her. Two nights ago, I happened to be passing outside the window
when she was discussing storms with that Yankee; and do you know what
I heard her say?”

“No,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton. “I don’t know. I wish you wouldn’t go
on asking these questions when you know I can’t possibly answer them.”

Freddie ignored the interruption.

“I heard her say this,” he went on, impressively.

“‘After a really bad storm I’m hardly normal. I might do something
wild. _I might steal my best friend’s spoons._’ That’s what she said;
I heard it distinctly. Now what was the state of affairs on the night
the Talisman was stolen? Wasn’t it the worst storm you’ve known for
years?”

“It was,” agreed Mrs. Caistor Scorton, “quite the worst. But remember
that you slept through it yourself. You told us so last night. So
perhaps Mrs. Brent did the same.”

“You’re trying to laugh at me,” Freddie’s tone showed that he was
hurt. “I’m sure Mrs. Brent didn’t sleep through it. She hasn’t got my
strong nerves. No, I expect it drove her nearly out of her mind. What
if she stole something even more important than her best friend’s
spoons? Her room was quite near the place where the Talisman stood.
What if she got up in the night with all her nerves in rags, stole the
Talisman, hid it somewhere—and forgot all about it? And next morning
she goes off on the _Kestrel_, nobody knows where. What do you think
of that?”

“Not much,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton, gently. “Try again.”

Freddie looked at her dubiously for a moment or two before continuing
his survey.

“That leaves the two girls. But they have a complete _alibi_, luckily
for them.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton looked at him quizzically as he stopped.

“Your list isn’t complete yet, Mr. Stickney. You’ve left out quite a
number of possible people. Myself, for one. Yourself, for another. And
you’ve forgotten the four Dangerfields. Let’s be quite fair all round.
What about these people?”

Freddie, for once, was completely taken aback.

“That’s only a joke, isn’t it? You didn’t actually think . . .”

“Oh, don’t let us stumble over a trifle like that. Let’s be fair all
round.” Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s eyes twinkled, but their expression was
hardly kindly. “Since you won’t do it, I’ll show you that you’ve had a
diligent pupil just now. I’ll follow your own methods and you’ll
criticise my efforts.”

Freddie uttered some protesting noises, but she took no notice.

“First, there’s Mrs. Caistor Scorton. She had an opportunity of
stealing the Talisman. What about motive? I understand she’s plenty of
money. She’d hardly be tempted by that. No motive? Then shall we agree
to pass Mrs. Caistor Scorton? Very good.”

Her voice grew slightly acid.

“Then there’s Mr. Stickney. Opportunity? The same as Mrs. Caistor
Scorton’s. Motive?” She turned on him swiftly. “You’re hard up, aren’t
you, Mr. Stickney? Yes? So I’ve heard people say. People do talk,
don’t they? Well, then, what do you say about Mr. Stickney’s case? He
had the opportunity. He had a motive, we’ll say. And he admitted last
night that he was up and about just at the very time when the Talisman
was stolen. Pass Mr. Stickney? Well . . . hardly, I think. He’d better
go back for further examination, hadn’t he?”

Her laugh had a sarcastic ring in Freddie’s ears. But before he had
time to interrupt her, she had passed on down her list.

“Now for the Dangerfields. All of them have opportunity. What about
motive? (You see how apt a pupil I am, don’t you?) So far as the two
old people go, there’s no motive. They have the Talisman already; they
don’t need to steal it. Then there’s Helga. Her fiancé’s big game
shooting in Africa just now. She’s going to get married when he comes
back. Big game shooting costs money. I happen to know that he has
plenty. Helga wouldn’t need to steal the Talisman. Pass Helga
Dangerfield, I think.”

She glanced ironically at Freddie, who was somewhat mystified by the
turn of the examination.

“That’s the whole list, except for Eric Dangerfield. Do you happen to
have picked up anything about him, Mr. Stickney?”

Freddie seemed to feel that his reputation as an authority was at
stake. His beady eyes took on a meditative expression as he ran over
his memory for information.

“He’s Helga’s cousin, of course. And he’s the nearest living male in
the family. I suppose he’s an heir-male or whatever they call it.
Friocksheim goes down the male line, I’ve heard.”

“Nothing very new in all that, Mr. Stickney. Don’t you know something
about him personally?”

“Not much,” Freddie replied, doubtfully. “I’ve never met him before I
came here this time. He’s been abroad till quite lately. A bit of a
rolling stone, from all I’ve heard. Remittance man, or something like
that.”

“A ne’er-do-well, then?”

“I think so. Most likely.”

“Any other pleasant characteristics you can think of?”

Freddie hesitated for an instant, then apparently he made up his mind
to divulge something.

“Of course, Mrs. Caistor Scorton, this is absolutely in confidence.
You won’t repeat it?”

She shook her head, and he continued.

“He’s very hard up. I know that for a fact. I happened to be walking
in the garden that night he was playing bridge with you. He and the
old man were talking; and I chanced to overhear some things they said.
Of course, I wasn’t listening on purpose; but sometimes one can’t help
catching a sentence or two.”

Without giving his neighbour time to interrupt him, he hurried on to
his revelation.

“I gathered that Eric couldn’t pay up that night, either. He was
dunning his uncle for cash to square up with Morchard. Old Mr.
Dangerfield wasn’t pleased. He said something about this being the
last time. At any rate he said ‘last time’; but perhaps he was
speaking of some other time, before that. He seemed very hot about it.
Eric wasn’t looking very comfortable.”

“You seem to have heard a good deal,” said Mrs. Caistor Scorton,
indifferently.

But Freddie hardly seemed to notice her aloofness. He was off on a
fresh scent.

“I’d never thought of that,” he volunteered. “Of course, that throws a
fresh light on things. Let’s see if we can put two and two together.
Fact number one, he’s hard up. Fact number two, he’s a ne’er-do-well.
Fact number three, he couldn’t pay Morchard that night. Number four,
he may not have been able to persuade his uncle to pay. Number five,
he did pay after the Talisman disappeared—I happen to know that.
Problem, how did he manage to pay? Well, suppose he took the Talisman.
He wouldn’t need to sell it. He could raise some cash on it easily
enough, being a Dangerfield. He could get an advance and let them
notify his uncle. Old Mr. Dangerfield would be forced to pay up in
order to get the thing back. Or he might even simply hide the thing
and blackmail his uncle for money—hold the Talisman to ransom, so to
speak.”

“You have a wonderful imagination, Mr. Stickney. I hope you’ll go on
looking into the whole affair. Perhaps you’ll be able to clear it up
for us. It’s certainly been most unpleasant to feel that this cloud of
suspicion is hanging over the place. You’ll do your best, I’m sure.”

Freddie tried to appear modest under this testimonial to his capacity.

“That’s what I’ve felt all along,” he admitted. “One really owes it to
everyone to do one’s best to clear the thing up. It’s so awkward for
all of us.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton gave him what appeared to be a grateful glance.
Then, with more interest than she had shown for some minutes, she put
a direct question.

“Whom do you really suspect, Mr. Stickney?”

Freddie apparently had been tabulating his conclusions as he went
along, and he was able to answer her without a pause.

“Three people. I can’t get nearer than that.”

“And they are?” inquired Mrs. Caistor Scorton, with just a touch of
eagerness.

“Miss Cressage, of course,” responded Freddie at once. “I think her
doings need looking into. I’ll pay special attention to her.”

“Quite true. There’s a good deal that would be all the better of some
explanation. I don’t pretend to see through it myself. Now, the next
person?”

“The American, obviously. If we knew all that he knows we might know a
good deal more than we do know,” explained Freddie, with the air of a
Sibyl uttering some profound monition.

“Possibly. And the third person?”

“Eric Dangerfield. Curious that I hadn’t thought of him before, isn’t
it?”

“Very strange,” agreed Mrs. Caistor Scorton. “You’re usually so quick
at conclusions, Mr. Stickney.”

She rose to her feet with an air of dismissal.

“Well, I mustn’t detain you,” she said. “Be sure to let me know if you
discover anything else that’s interesting.”

As she moved across the lawn she glanced over her shoulder and smiled
encouragingly; but if Freddie had been a thought-reader he would
hardly have felt flattered.

“What a malicious little reptile,” she reflected. “He makes me feel
shivery. Luckily he’s not likely to do any real harm. Nobody will pay
any attention to him.”



Chapter VIII

Conway Westenhanger had no very high opinion of his own ability to
unravel the Talisman mystery, and the more he thought over the subject
the less could he see any simple solution. One point, however, seemed
beyond dispute: the method of elimination, as handled by Freddie
Stickney, had been given a trial and had led to absolutely nothing
whatever. The net result of Freddie’s efforts was that everybody had
been made to feel uncomfortable, while not a single gleam of light had
been thrown upon the problem. And yet, given the conditions of the
case, the elimination method seemed to promise results. If the
servants were put on one side, and if no thief had got into the house
in the darkness, then only thirteen persons remained who had any
possible means of access to the Corinthian’s Room that night. One of
them must be responsible for the vanishing of the Talisman. That
seemed an inevitable conclusion.

But here his train of thought was crossed by another. He could not
quite dismiss from his mind the impression made upon him by the way in
which old Rollo Dangerfield had taken his loss.

“The thing’s worth at least £50,000,” Westenhanger reflected. “The
Dangerfields may be well enough off, but a loss on that scale is
something more than a flea-bite. And yet he doesn’t seem disturbed in
the slightest. One could bet that he really believes the Talisman will
turn up again in a few days. If it isn’t cold confidence, then it’s
the best acting I ever saw. I could almost take my oath that he meant
what he said.”

He turned the matter over and over in his mind for a time; but
although a number of suggestions offered themselves, none of them
seemed satisfying.

“It may be a case of rank superstition, but I don’t read him so
myself. Who believes in that sort of stuff nowadays? It can’t be that.
Of course, he side-tracked all the talk about the Dangerfield Secret.
He’s probably half-ashamed of that business—likely it’s some old
ritual about informing the heir that in 1033 or so the head of the
Dangerfields sold his soul to the Devil. The Dangerfield Secret has
nothing to do with the case anyway.”

But Westenhanger was wrong on that point, as he was to discover at no
distant date. However, dismissing that line of thought, he sought for
other possible explanations of the mystery.

“The old man may know who took the Talisman,” he suggested to himself.
“If that’s so, then perhaps he means to put the screw on the culprit
quietly, without saying anything to the rest of us. Most obviously he
doesn’t want a scandal at Friocksheim. But in that case he must have
spotted the wrong ’un immediately; because, first thing in the
morning, he was quite certain that the Talisman would turn up again—he
wasn’t worried in the slightest degree. If he tracked down the thief
between one a.m. and breakfast-time, it was a lightning bit of
detective work. But if it wasn’t a case of detection, then the only
possible explanation is that he actually saw the theft committed.”

Westenhanger paused only for a moment on this idea, however, for its
inherent improbability struck him at once.

“That’s no good. If he’d caught the thief in the act, he’d simply have
threatened to expose him; got the Talisman back from him, and replaced
it in its cabinet without giving rise to all this trouble.”

Then a new thought occurred to him.

“But suppose old Rollo couldn’t trust the thief not to have a second
try, with better luck the second shot? That’s a possibility. If I’d
been in old Rollo’s shoes under these conditions I think I’d have
pocketed the Talisman and kept it safe until that particular guest’s
visit was up. Then he could put it back in the cabinet with a
comfortable mind. That’s a possibility, too, and Wraxall might fit the
case.”

But here again his knowledge would hardly fit the hypothesis.

“No, that won’t work, either,” he admitted to himself. “Old Rollo’s a
chivalrous old bird. He knows Miss Cressage is under suspicion
now—Freddie’s sure to have let that leak out. If the old man knew the
identity of the thief he certainly wouldn’t stand aside and let the
girl bear the brunt of things for a moment, I’m sure. . . . Wraxall
isn’t even a friend of the Dangerfields; he’s the merest casual
caller, so far as they’re concerned. There’s no reason why they should
shield _him_.”

He cudgelled his brain for another alternative hypothesis.

“Suppose the old man didn’t spot the thief, but managed somehow to
discover where the Talisman was hidden after it was stolen. He may be
keeping a watch on the hiding-place, waiting for the thief to give
himself away by going after the thing at last.”

He brooded for a time on the various ideas he had evolved; but in the
end he put them all aside.

“Damn it!” he said, irritably, “if I go on like this, I’ll end up by
being as bad as Freddie. That’s not the way to go about the business
at all. What’s wanted is new facts, not a lot of futile ideas. One
must begin somewhere. I’ll go and have a look at the Corinthian’s Room
and see if anything suggests itself when I’m on the actual spot.”

Westenhanger had learnt that no change had been made in the
Corinthian’s Room since the theft. The cabinet had been untouched,
just as the thief had left it. They had all been asked not to tamper
with anything.

“The Talisman will come back by the way in which it went,” Old
Dangerfield had said, with a faint mockery in his voice. “Let us leave
the door open for it to get into its case again.”

Without any very strong hope in his mind, Westenhanger made his way to
the Corinthian’s Room which, to his relief, was untenanted. He felt a
certain shamefacedness in actually embarking on this attempt at
detection, and he was glad that he could examine the place without
betraying his purpose. As he entered the door, his eye was caught by
the gigantic chess-board set in the floor pattern, and he examined it
curiously.

“These little holes at the corners of the squares are rum,” he
thought, as his eye was caught by one of them. “I begin to wonder
whether Wraxall wasn’t near the mark when he talked about some kind of
man-trap for protecting the Talisman. But no, that’s obviously
rubbish, because the Talisman’s gone and yet none of us shows much in
the way of visible damage. Besides, old Rollo declared there was no
man-trap—you could lift the Talisman and come to no harm. He
volunteered that. And if there’s one thing certain in this business
it’s that Rollo isn’t an aimless liar. That notion has nothing in it.”

He stepped across the chess-board and halted before the empty cabinet
which had held the Dangerfield Talisman. It stood on its stone pillar
so that the glass front was breast high, and he examined it minutely
in the hope of detecting something significant. The central
plate-glass slab, through which he had inspected the armlet three
nights before, was intact. On the velvet floor of the cabinet he could
see the clearly marked ring made by the long-continued pressure of the
bell-cover of tinted glass which now stood in a fresh position a
little to the right, almost behind the closed door of the cabinet. The
other door stood half-open, and he noticed that it had no lock but
only an ordinary spring-catch. Idly he tried the strength of the
spring, using his nail to avoid leaving any finger-marks, and he found
that the catch was in good order. The handles of the doors were simple
in pattern, like miniature corkscrew handles. Conway Westenhanger
studied the glass surfaces with care, but after a time he abandoned
his self-imposed task.

“Not much use bothering about finger-marks there,” he commented.
“There’s no saying how many of us had our paws on it, that night he
showed us the Talisman. Some of them are bound to be there, even if
the case has been dusted by the servants. Most likely there’s a set of
my own amongst them. Nobody could be incriminated by that, certainly.
There’s nothing in it.”

He stepped back a pace to look at the cabinet as a whole, and suddenly
a keen expression crossed his features. He had seen the thing he
wanted.

“Well, _that_ limits it down considerably!” he said with relief. “What
a bit of pure luck! And I believe I’m right, too.”

He thought for a moment or two before deciding on his next step.

“This isn’t going to be so easy, after all,” he concluded, with more
hesitation in his manner. “I can’t go running round them, asking that
particular question bluntly, or the thief will be put on his guard
long before it comes to his turn. This affair will need careful
handling—very careful. And I’ll need to try a blank experiment first
with someone who is absolutely above suspicion. I know how I’d do the
thing, but I’m prejudiced subconsciously, probably. I’ll need some
subject who doesn’t know what I’m after.”

He ran over in his mind the list of the house-party.

“Douglas, of course! He’s the man. He offered to help if I needed him,
and he’s able to keep his tongue quiet.”

Then a fresh thought occurred to him. A picture of Eileen Cressage’s
strained face came up in his memory and changed his immediate purpose.

“I’ll see her first, and try it,” he decided. “After all, the main
thing is to clear her and get her out of this affair if possible. Once
that’s done, there will be time enough to think about Douglas.”

It took him longer than he expected to hit upon a line of procedure
that satisfied him. More than once he was forced to discard an idea
which proved faulty after consideration and think out something fresh.
At last, however, his plans seemed to be sound so far as he could see.
He closed the door of the Corinthian’s Room and made his way into the
hall. Freddie Stickney was sitting beside the main entrance, evidently
deep in thought.

“Wake up, Freddie!” Westenhanger brutally interrupted the reflections
of the amateur detective. “Seen Douglas about anywhere?”

“I think he’s been playing tennis. Most likely he’s still down at the
courts.”

“Oh! Seen Cynthia and Miss Cressage since breakfast?”

Westenhanger was careful to couple Eileen’s name with Cynthia’s in his
demand. He had no desire to let Freddie know that he was in search of
Eileen in particular.

“Cynthia’s probably down at the tennis courts with Douglas,” Freddie
assured him. “I saw them go off together in that direction. Miss
Cressage went away by herself some time ago, towards the shore—over
yonder.”

Westenhanger nodded his thanks curtly and descended the steps leading
down into the gardens. He sauntered along while he was within range of
Freddie’s eyes, but as soon as he got out of sight of the door, he
quickened his steps. Ten minutes brought him to a spot from which he
could see the nearer coastline, and, looking from point to point, he
at last detected a girl’s figure on a tiny headland which ran out to
form one horn of the bay.

He made his way indirectly towards her, and before he reached the
ridge of the headland he slackened his pace, so that when he actually
came into her neighbourhood he seemed to have arrived there by pure
chance in the course of an aimless walk. He wished, above everything,
to avoid giving her the impression that he had deliberately sought her
out; for the test he meant to apply depended for its success on her
being completely off her guard. He had not the slightest doubt as to
the result, but his scientific caution demanded that he should play
his game with absolute fairness. If the test was to establish anything
whatever, it would have to be applied without fear or favour.

As he drew nearer he tried to read something from her attitude. She
faced the sea, and from time to time he saw her glance along the
horizon, only to look down again when her eyes found nothing but the
skyline.

“That girl’s got a bit of personality somewhere,” Westenhanger
reflected, as he advanced. “Every line of her figure shows some
emotion, just as clearly as if I were looking at her face. But what
particular emotion is it? She looks dejected, but that isn’t
everything. There’s something else there as well.”

Enlightenment flashed across him.

“That’s the way Robinson Crusoe might have looked when he was hoping
for a sail and yet felt certain it wasn’t coming that day. It’s hope
deferred that’s wrong with that girl. But what’s she hoping for?”

By this time he had come quite close to her, and at the sound of his
steps on the turf she turned her head.

“Not disturbing you, I hope?” he said, casually, as he came up. “I
came up to have a look at the view for a moment or two. May I sit
down?”

She nodded assent, seeming to accept his company with indifference. He
seated himself a couple of yards away and for some minutes he gazed
over the bay without saying anything.

“May I smoke?”

She gave him permission, and he rose and stepped across to offer his
case. She took a cigarette, but he seemed to change his mind, closed
his case and put it back in his pocket. Then he re-seated himself in
his old position.

“That’s stupid of me,” he exclaimed, as the girl looked at her
unlighted cigarette. He drew out a little silver box and tossed it
over to her. “Catch.”

He threw it so clumsily, that though she snatched at it in the air,
she missed it, and was forced to reach over and pick it up.

“Sorry,” Westenhanger apologised, as she struck a match for herself.

He waited for some minutes before saying anything further. Eileen
Cressage seemed to feel no desire for talk. She smoked slowly, and
from time to time her eyes followed the tiny blue clouds as they
drifted seaward on the faint airs which came from the land.
Westenhanger was not deceived. She was still scanning the horizon-line
in search of something. Suddenly he realised what the thing must be.

“I wonder how Mrs. Brent is getting on,” he said, watching the girl’s
face as he spoke. “She hasn’t made any sign since she left.”

“How could she?”

“Oh, wireless. Most boats have it.”

“I wish the _Kestrel_ had. But she hasn’t.”

Something in the girl’s voice surprised Westenhanger—an intensity of
feeling which seemed quite uncalled-for by the subject. Of course,
Eileen was watching for the _Kestrel’s_ return. That was why she had
come up to the headland; that was why she looked out to sea so
eagerly. Anyone could put two and two together to that extent. But why
should she be so eager to get into touch with the yacht? Obviously she
wanted to do so; the reference to the lack of wireless could mean
nothing else. And the tone of her voice was enough to betray the
intensity of her desire.

Of course the _Kestrel_ meant Mrs. Brent; there was no one else on
board except the crew. But that meant that the return of Mrs. Brent
was the thing Eileen Cressage was awaiting with such eagerness. Where
did Mrs. Brent come into the affair? The only thing that mattered now
to the girl was to be extricated from the position she was in. Had she
been shielding Mrs. Brent in something? Had she given Mrs. Brent some
promise of secrecy and was she now waiting for the _Kestrel’s_ return
so that she might take back her promise and clear herself? It sounded
unlikely. Mrs. Brent could hardly be mixed up in the Talisman mystery.
But if she was not, why should Eileen be so eager for the coming of
the yacht?

He watched the sea again, avoiding the girl’s face with his eyes.
After a time she finished her cigarette and threw away the stub.

“Another?” he suggested, drawing out his case.

She refused, and he took a cigarette himself and felt for his
match-box. Eileen had let it slip down to the ground beside her after
using it, and she now picked it up and tossed it across to him.
Westenhanger deliberately lighted his cigarette, blew out the match
carefully, and pitched it away before saying anything.

“Nobody suspects you of taking the Talisman, Miss Cressage,” he said
at last.

The girl started as though she had been stung, and made a gesture as
though she wished to stop him saying anything further. Westenhanger
continued without appearing to notice her action.

“If that was all I had to say, Miss Cressage, I think I would have
left it to your imagination. No decent person thinks you had anything
to do with that business; and I expect you know that without my
telling you. What I wanted to say was a shade more interesting.”

He looked out to seaward, so as to let the girl feel that he was not
watching her.

“I _know_ you didn’t take it, and I think I’ll be able to prove that
fairly conclusively to any reasonable person.”

To his surprise she showed very little relief at his statement. Her
voice had no particular ring of pleasure in it when she replied. It
seemed almost as though she regarded the matter as of slight
importance in comparison with something else that was in her mind.
Westenhanger was frankly puzzled by her attitude—even a little
nettled to find that his efforts on her behalf led to so little
acknowledgment.

“It’s very kind of you, Mr. Westenhanger. I know I have some very good
friends here at Friocksheim. But there are some other people here too.
I know perfectly well what some of them think. Even if I were cleared
of the Talisman theft, they’d go on repeating other things about me.
Oh, I know what they’ve been saying. I’m not a fool, Mr. Westenhanger.
I know quite well what that miserable little beast Stickney has been
hinting about me.”

She raised her eyes again to the sky-line, looking over the empty sea.

“Oh, I _do_ wish the _Kestrel_ would come!”

For a few moments Westenhanger also scanned the horizon, giving her
time to pull herself together again. When she broke the silence, it
was in another tone.

“I’m sorry, Mr. Westenhanger. That was ungrateful of me. You’ve been
very kind. Don’t take that seriously. You know I’ve got very raw
nerves just now, and you mustn’t blame me too much.”

Westenhanger’s smile reassured her.

“Now I’m all right,” she went on. “I don’t deserve it; but I wish
you’d tell me just what you meant by what you said just now. How can
you clear me in the Talisman affair? Of course I knew all along that
you never believed I took it. I could see that in your face—and in
Douglas’s too. But proving it’s a different thing, isn’t it?”

Westenhanger smiled again, in genuine amusement this time; and his
expression helped the girl in her struggle for the control of her
nerves.

“I’m going to play the mystery-man for another quarter of an hour,” he
said, “then I’ll explain the whole affair to you. We’ll need Douglas’s
help also. But just to tantalise you, I can tell you that I got
absolute certainty on the point since I came up here half and hour
ago. Now, if that excites your curiosity, let’s gather in Douglas and
clear the ground for my explanation. It’s so simple that you’ll
probably think you saw it yourself, really.”

She rose to her feet and gave a last glance round the sea-rim; but no
smoke showed on the horizon. Then they made their way down the
headland and back into the Friocksheim grounds. Douglas had finished
his tennis, they found when they reached the courts; and as Cynthia
had gone into the house to write a letter he was easily persuaded to
go with Westenhanger and Eileen. As they walked through the gardens,
the engineer puzzled Douglas by a request.

“Have you a thick scarf, Miss Cressage?”

“Yes.”

The girl’s face showed that she had no idea of what lay behind the
inquiry.

“Well, would you mind getting it—and a pair of gloves. And then would
you come to the Corinthian’s Room?”

She nodded without saying anything, and Westenhanger turned to
Douglas.

“Your outfit, my lad, will be a pair of thin gloves, if you have them.
Bring ’em to the Corinthian’s Room, and don’t keep Miss Cressage
waiting. I’m going there myself direct.”

In a few moments they rejoined him.

“Now, Douglas,” he said, “your business is to stand in the corridor at
present and detain any possible intruder by the charm of your
conversation. Nobody’s to get into this room for the next five
minutes. You’re a peaceful picket, you understand?”

Douglas grinned and retired into the corridor.

“Now, Miss Cressage,” said Westenhanger, pushing the door until it was
almost closed, “would you mind putting on your gloves.”

The girl did so and then looked at him with a puzzled expression.

“What’s all this about, Mr. Westenhanger? I don’t understand.”

“I’m afraid you must bear with it for a minute or two more and then it
will be quite obvious. Do you mind if I blindfold you with this scarf?
I know it looks like a child’s game; but I really am serious.”

He wound the scarf round her head and fastened it gently.

“Can you see?”

“No; you’ve been quite efficient.”

“It’s most important that you shouldn’t see anything. Quite sure
you’re absolutely blindfolded?”

“Quite.”

“Very good.”

She heard a click like the closing of a pocket-knife, then
Westenhanger’s voice in a low tone near her ear.

“I’ve just shut the door of the cabinet. Now let me lead you over to
it.”

He guided her carefully for a step or two.

“Now,” he continued in the same low tone, “you’re standing right in
front of the centre of the cabinet. If you lift your hand you can open
the door. Try it.”

Obediently Eileen put out her hand, groped and caught the handle and,
after turning it, opened the door.

“Now,” said Westenhanger again, “suppose you try to reach the place
where the Talisman was. Wait! You might knock over the bell, being
blindfolded. Don’t move an inch after I say Stop! . . . Stop!”

She brought her hand to rest immediately.

“Now, bring your hand back to your side and then take a step
backwards. I’ll see you don’t trip.”

As she stood, after completing the movement, she heard another slight
click.

“That’s all, Miss Cressage. Now I’ll take the scarf off.”

He did so, and she looked round, slightly dazzled by the sunlight
which streamed into the room. Nothing seemed to be changed; and she
failed to understand what his manœuvres meant. Then her eyes ranged
over the cabinet and something caught her attention.

“You’ve been playing some trick on me, Mr. Westenhanger,” she said,
indignantly. “I’m sure I opened the right-hand door of the cabinet,
and now it’s the left-hand one that’s open!”

Westenhanger, as soon as she began to speak, had crossed the room
swiftly and closed the door leading into the corridor completely. He
turned back with a vexed expression on his face.

“My fault entirely,” he said. “I ought to have shut that door. You
nearly gave the show away to Douglas. Didn’t I tell you it was
obvious?”

Eileen looked from him to the cabinet and then back again to his face,
which showed a mixture of triumph and amusement.

“But it isn’t obvious,” she protested. “I don’t understand what you’re
driving at.”

“We’ll repeat the whole performance with Douglas, and you’ll see the
point.”

He went to the door again and summoned the picket.

“Douglas, come inside. I strongly recommend to your attention the
genuine antique carving on the back of this door. It’s well worthy of
study. Study it.”

Douglas Fairmile obediently stepped into the room, faced the door and
fixed his eye on the carving.

“I know it by heart, old man,” he asserted. “You can’t puzzle me with
any of your parlour games.”

“Got it well into your mind? All right. Miss Cressage will now
blindfold you.”

The girl, still more puzzled by this procedure, put the scarf over
Douglas’s eyes and fastened it in position.

“Blind as a bat, Douglas?” demanded Westenhanger. His tone changed.
“I’m serious. You can’t see anything?”

“Not a thing.”

“Right.”

Westenhanger took out his pen-knife and opened it silently. He drew
Eileen’s attention to it with a glance.

“Oh, half a jiff,” he exclaimed, as if he suddenly remembered
something. “One of the cabinet doors is open. I’ll shut it.” He shut
his pen-knife with a click; but to Eileen’s surprise he made no
attempt to close the open door of the cabinet.

“Now, Douglas, this way. I’ll lead you.”

Again he gave the same series of orders as he had given to her. She
saw Douglas put out his right hand, grope for the handle of the
right-hand door, open it, and then inserting his arm into the case,
reach to the left towards the place where the Talisman used to lie.

“Stop! . . . Now come out again, gently. Don’t upset the glass bell.”

Douglas withdrew his arm cautiously.

“One pace to the rear, and stand fast.”

Douglas stepped back obediently. Westenhanger went up to the cabinet.

“I’m shutting the door. Hear the click?”

He suited the action to the word, closing the door which Douglas had
opened. Then he turned round to Eileen.

“_Now_ do you see, Miss Cressage? That’ll do, Douglas. You can take
off your turban. It doesn’t suit you.”

Douglas disentangled himself from the scarf, blinked for a moment or
two, and then looked at the cabinet.

“What’s your little game?” he demanded. “The left-hand door’s open
now. It was the right-hand one that I opened.”

“Exactly,” said Westenhanger. “The left-hand door’s been open all the
time—_just as the thief left it_. Neither of you touched it. That’s
why I blindfolded you both. I wanted you to think both doors were
shut; and I didn’t want to close that left-hand door. Much better to
leave things exactly as they are. The Dangerfields may want to call in
the police after all, you know; and we mustn’t destroy any possible
clues. Hence the gloves I asked you to put on—you’ve left no
fingermarks.”

Eileen broke in with a trace of excitement in her voice.

“Now I _do_ see. You wanted to test which hand I used when I opened
the cabinet. Both Douglas and I are right-handed. The thief was
left-handed because he opened the other door—not the one we opened. Is
that it?”

“That’s it,” admitted Westenhanger. “I told you it was obvious. And of
course all that by-play was just meant to keep your mind off the
crucial action, so that you’d do it perfectly naturally, without
giving it a thought. See it, Douglas? Don’t forget the pattern on the
back of the door; it’s most important, you know!”

“You had me there, I’ll admit,” confessed Douglas. “You wandered me
completely, so that I hadn’t a notion what you were after. And so the
thief’s left-handed, is he?”

“Looks like it, doesn’t it?”

Eileen stepped over to the cabinet and examined it for a moment or
two.

“How, exactly, did you come to think of it, Mr. Westenhanger? I
suppose it was the left-hand door that gave you the key?”

“There’s some confirmatory evidence,” Westenhanger explained. “Will
you stand in front of the case, Miss Cressage? Now notice that you’ve
the choice between the two doors if you wanted to get at the Talisman.
You’re right-handed, so you choose the right-hand door, naturally.
Besides, it’s always easier to turn a handle clockwise than
counter-clockwise; and that favours the right-hand again,
subconsciously. To open the cabinet you turn the right-hand handle as
you turn a corkscrew, which is easier than turning the left-hand
handle counter-clockwise.”

Eileen put out both hands and imitated the motion of opening the
doors.

“That’s true enough,” she said. “I remember that sometimes a door
handle gives one trouble if it works in the opposite direction from
the usual way.”

Westenhanger continued his explanation.

“Now look at where the bell has been placed. That’s the really
important point. The thief might have been a right-handed man and used
his right hand to take the Talisman; then, after he had got it, he
might have closed the door he had used and opened the left-hand one.
But the bell gives him away.”

Douglas examined the case closely.

“The bell’s slightly to the right of its old position. Is that what
you mean?”

Westenhanger nodded.

“That’s it. A right-handed man goes in at the right-hand door, just as
you both did. Then he crooks his elbow towards his chest to get his
hand over to the Talisman. That brings his hand to the centre of the
case. It’s a narrow case, you notice. Not much room to manœuvre in
it.”

“I see,” said Eileen. “He’d pick up the bell; and he’d have to put it
down again—clear of the Talisman—in order to pick up the jewel. If he
put it down on the right-hand side of the case, it would be in the way
of his arm in getting out again, so he’d set it down _beyond_ the
Talisman, towards the left of the case. Then he’d pick up the Talisman
and take his hand and arm out of the case. Is that it?”

“Yes,” confirmed Westenhanger. “That’s what a right-handed man would
do. And since the bell’s been set down towards the right hand of the
cabinet, it’s obvious that there’s been a left-hander at work, isn’t
it?”

“That seems right,” Eileen admitted. “It’s very clever of you to have
noticed it.”

“You noticed it yourself. It just happened that I was lucky enough to
spot the thing almost at once.”

Eileen reflected for a moment, then she addressed Westenhanger
directly.

“There’s just one other thing I don’t quite understand. Out on the
headland, you said you’d made certain about the matter after you met
me there. That means you weren’t quite sure before. What did you mean
by that?”

Westenhanger laughed.

“That’s obvious, too. Don’t you see it now?”

The girl went over in her memory the talk which she had had with him
half an hour previously; but quite evidently it suggested nothing to
her mind as a solution.

“No,” she admitted at last, “I can’t think of anything.”

“It’s simple enough. Think of the things I did; don’t bother about
anything I said to you.”

After a moment Eileen recalled something.

“You offered me a cigarette.”

“Yes. I held the case so that you could reach it with either hand; but
you used your right hand to pick out the cigarette.”

“Was that all?” She put on a judicial expression. “That doesn’t seem
much to go on in a thing like this—does it, Douglas?”

“Look at him grinning,” said Douglas, in sham disgust. “He’s laughing
at us. He’s got more up his sleeve, of course.”

Westenhanger admitted it with a nod.

“Of course I have. What happened next, Miss Cressage?”

“I smoked for a while.”

“Do you usually smoke unlighted cigarettes?”

Eileen laughed at her omission.

“No, of course not. I remember now. You gave me your match-box.”

“Hardly correct in detail. I was rude enough to pitch my match-box
across to you, so that you could catch it with either hand. What I
wanted to see was which hand you would use. You made a snatch at
it—with your right hand.”

“I didn’t imagine I was being watched so closely as all that, Mr.
Westenhanger. Is that all, now?”

“Oh, no. There’s more to come. You finished your cigarette and threw
away the stub. You tried to fling it over the cliff-edge on your right
side, if you remember.”

“I think so. One does these things without thinking about them.”

“That’s just why I attached importance to them in this case. Now
think. It was a fairly long distance to throw a cigarette, wasn’t it.
You just failed to send yours over the edge. So you had to pitch it to
the best of your ability. If you’d been left-handed you’d have used
your left hand, swinging it across your body. What you actually did
was to use your right hand in an awkward attitude. Evidently your
right hand, even used awkwardly, was better than your left used in a
natural gesture. Obvious conclusion—you were right-handed.”

“That was rather neat, wasn’t it, Douglas?”

“Oh, Conway always had the name of a smart lad, even among the great
brains like myself. Don’t let’s interrupt him. I can see he’s still
bursting with news.”

“How do you strike a match on a box, Douglas?” demanded Westenhanger,
suddenly.

“How should I know? This way, of course.”

Douglas fished a match-box from his pocket, took out a vesta and
struck it.

“That’s what you did, Miss Cressage. You held the match in your right
hand and the box in your left, just as Douglas is holding them now. A
left-hander reverses the positions and strikes the match with his left
hand. I remember noticing that once.”

“Anything more, Mr. Westenhanger?”

“Just one thing. After a while, I took out a cigarette myself and you
had to throw my match-box across to me. You used your right hand
again. That made five things, in any one of which even partial
left-handedness might have come out. What settled it, to my mind, was
the snatch at the match-box when I tossed it over to you. That’s an
almost instinctive movement, when you’ve no time to think. One uses
the hand that’s had most practice, provided one has a free choice
between the two hands; and I was careful to pitch the box so that you
might have used either hand for it.”

“Well, you’re a good actor, Mr. Westenhanger. I never suspected
anything at all; and the whole time you must have been watching me
like a cat watching a mouse.”

“It wouldn’t have been much good if you had suspected,” said
Westenhanger. He turned to Douglas. “Now, Douglas, does that evidence
seem enough to prove that Miss Cressage had no hand in the Talisman’s
disappearance? I promised her I could do that. It’s for you to say.”

Douglas Fairmile had no doubts.

“Of course it does. I may not be an impartial judge, of course; for I
never believed for a moment that Eileen had the least connection with
the Talisman affair. But that evidence would convince most people.
Smart of you to spot these things, Conway.”

Conway Westenhanger glanced from one to the other.

“It’s for Miss Cressage to say what we ought to do next,” he pointed
out to them. “My main reason for going into the thing at all was
simply to clear her of suspicion.”

Eileen gave him a grateful glance and seemed inclined to say
something. Then quite evidently she changed her mind and chose a fresh
subject.

“What do you think, Douglas?”

“Never suffered from doubts in my life. Seems to me the first thing is
to put a stop to any more chatter with your name in it, Eileen. Call
another general meeting. Let Conway make a few remarks. That would
finish it.”

Eileen looked from one to the other doubtfully. She reflected for a
moment or two, while Douglas and Westenhanger waited for her to speak.
At last she gave them her view.

“No, you’re wrong, Douglas. That wouldn’t finish it. It would simply
turn it into something worse. Both Mrs. Caistor Scorton and that
little creature Stickney were accurate enough in what they said last
night. I was out of my room, just as they made out. If I wasn’t
stealing the Talisman, then they’d have their own ideas about where I
was during that time. Mr. Westenhanger knows what I mean; and so do
you, Douglas. And I can’t clear myself. I really can’t.”

She deliberately caught the eye of each man in turn and held it long
enough to show that she was not avoiding them; then she looked down,
as if thinking carefully.

“You certainly mustn’t say anything about this, just now. It wouldn’t
do me any good. And there’s a better reason. Our one chance of catching
this thief is to find the left-handed man amongst the people here. If
you bring out this evidence, he’ll be on his guard at once and cover
up his left-handedness somehow. He could cut his right hand badly, or
something like that.”

“I knew that,” admitted Westenhanger, “but the main thing still seems
to me to get you cleared. Don’t you want to be?”

Eileen studied his face in silence for a moment.

“I’ll tell you something,” she said, at last. “When you came down this
morning and began to talk, I thought you were just trying to be
sympathetic; but I didn’t take it at face value. I believed you were
only trying to cheer me up, and that your talk about proving things
wasn’t meant to be taken seriously. Now I know you really did mean
what you said. What’s more, I’ve learned that somebody did more than
just sympathise. You didn’t stop there, Mr. Westenhanger: you did
something practical to clear me of suspicion.”

“I happened to be lucky, first shot—that’s all.”

She waved that aside and went on:

“You really _did_ something, no matter how you choose to describe it;
you didn’t simply stand round, pitying me. Do you know, that’s made
things ever so much easier for me, now that I know about it. I can’t
explain why; it’s just a feeling. I don’t feel absolutely isolated
now, as I did this morning. Don’t think I’m ungrateful to you and
Cynthia, Douglas, or to Nina either. You were all as kind as you could
be. But somehow nobody seemed to be doing anything to help; and I was
feeling the strain of it all, horribly. Now it seems all right again,
somehow.”

She stopped for a moment, then added doubtfully:

“I don’t suppose I’ve made it clear; but it is so. I feel as if a
weight were off my mind. I don’t care how long it is before the
_Kestrel_ comes back.”

“What’s the _Kestrel_ got to do with it?” asked Douglas.

“I can’t tell you,” she said, in a lighter tone. “It’s my turn to play
the mystery-man, Mr. Westenhanger. But everything will be all right
when the _Kestrel_ drops anchor in the bay. I feel sure of that.”

“Are you talking about the Talisman?” demanded Westenhanger.

“No! What’s the _Kestrel_ got to do with the Talisman?” Eileen asked
in surprise. “I only meant my own affairs. I can’t tell you anything
about the Talisman. I know nothing about it.”

Westenhanger accepted her statement without comment.

“Then I take it that you think we ought to use this affair”—he
indicated the cabinet—“to track down the fellow who stole the
Talisman? Things are to be left as they are, so far as you’re
concerned? You don’t want us to say anything to the rest of them?”

“No, certainly not.” There was no hesitation in her tone. “You’ve got
a trump card with this thing, Mr. Westenhanger. You know that well
enough. And the thief must be found. One has to agree even with Mr.
Stickney at times. He’s quite right. We _are_ all under suspicion
until this thing is cleared up; and I think it ought to be cleared up.
I know just exactly how it feels to be under suspicion. You must see
it through to the end and catch the thief. I’m sure you can—you’re
quite clever enough for that—and it’s the only way to clear the rest
of us completely. I wouldn’t hear of it being used and wasted merely
to clear me personally and leave all the rest in the lurch. We’ve got
other people to think of as well.”

“Very sporting of you, Eileen,” said Douglas. “I think you’re right.
But if you change your mind, of course you’ll let us know?”

“I’m really all right again, thanks. I shan’t worry a bit now. Things
are quite different—and I can wait for the _Kestrel_.”



Chapter IX

For almost a week, Friocksheim had been under strain. First had come
the sultry spell, days of oppressive heat which set sensitive nerves
on edge and brought a certain lassitude to even the most active of the
guests. The storm, though it cleared the physical atmosphere, had
coincided with the creation of a fresh tension. A cloud of suspicion,
heavier than the cumulus in the sky, had settled down upon the house;
and as the days passed without any sign of its dispersion, its
influence showed more and more clearly among the house-party. Even
Douglas Fairmile’s normal high spirits were unable to resist it
entirely.

“Something will have to be done about this business, Conway,” he
complained, as they sat smoking in the Corinthian’s Room in the
afternoon. “It’s gone on for three days now, and everyone’s feeling it
more or less. We’re all getting off our feed, metaphorically of
course.”

Conway Westenhanger nodded without taking his eyes from the tapestry
on the wall. He seemed to be studying it closely; but in reality
Diana’s hunting hardly impinged on his attention. Like Douglas, he was
feeling the strain, although personally he was free from any
suspicion.

“Unrestful atmosphere, right enough,” he commented, shortly.

Douglas made a gesture of impotent irritation.

“Everything’s at sixes and sevens,” he went on. “Even old Rollo—decent
bird—is getting too much for me. If the talk drifts round towards the
root of the trouble, he just smiles that far-away smile of his—as if
he was thinking about something else entirely—and one almost expects
him to tell us again that it’s all right, that the damned thing will
turn up again in due course, and that we needn’t worry over it.
Politeness carried to that pitch is enervating, Conway. That’s a
fact.”

“I feel the same myself. But somehow, he’s almost beginning to make me
believe he really means it. A kind of hypnotic suggestion, I suppose.
It’s impressive, whether you like it or not, to see a man take a loss
like that so quietly. I couldn’t do it.”

“Nor I. But he’ll have the lot of us in the jumps if this goes on. I’m
not a suspicious oaf like Freddie, but it irks me all the same. It’s
not so much that there’s a thief among us that bothers me. We’ve mixed
with all these people before—bar Wraxall. What really puts my nerves
on edge is that I don’t know _which_ of ’em’s the thief, I want to see
the rest of us cleared.”

Westenhanger’s eye travelled incuriously over the group of Diana’s
nymphs and passed on to the stag at the other side of the tapestry;
but it was evidently merely a mechanical movement. His thoughts
absorbed the whole of his attention. Before he made any reply to
Douglas the door opened and Helga Dangerfield came into the room. She
nodded to them as she passed, and went into the library.

“Where’s Wraxall to-day?” asked Westenhanger, merely to avoid leaving
an impression on the girl that they had stopped talking on her
account.

“Digging up megatheriums or flint arrows somewhere in the
neighbourhood,” said Douglas, taking the hint. “Or else he’s
chaffering for the oldest nutmeg-grater in Frogsholme. He seems really
keen on that sort of stuff.”

Helga Dangerfield came through the library door with a book in her
hand.

“You like this room?” she asked, pausing for a moment as she passed.
“So do I. It used to be my playroom when I was getting beyond the
crawling stage.”

“Nice floor for building castles on,” Westenhanger suggested, with a
glance across the smooth marble pavement. “You must have had rather a
jolly time. Plenty of room.”

“Sometimes I wish I had it all over again.” She smiled at her own
idea, than added: “I must hurry off; Nina and Cynthia are waiting for
me.”

As soon as she had left the room Douglas returned to the point at
which the conversation had been interrupted.

“Can’t you think of anything, Conway? I admit I’m not the star
performer in the thinking orchestra. It’s up to you to play a solo
while I do the grunts of approval down in the bass.”

Westenhanger shook his head.

“Eliminate and eliminate, that’s the only way. And the only thing we
have to eliminate with is this left-handed affair. It’s none so easy,
Douglas. The real bother rises out of the fact that most left-handed
people are partly ambidextrous.”

“I get your meaning up to the word ‘fact’,” said Douglas,
apologetically, “but it seems to slip a cog after that somehow. What
about words of one syllable? I seem to remember seeing special clubs
for left-handed golfers. Not much ambidexterity about that, surely?”

“That’s just the point,” explained Westenhanger. “I’ve been thinking
about one or two left-handed people I know, and in most things you
wouldn’t spot that they were left-handed at all. If it’s a one-handed
job they’re doing, they may use their right hand oftener than their
left. It’s only in two-handed things, like golf, or cricket, or
billiards, or cutting hay with a scythe, that they give themselves
away completely. It’s the arm-motion rather than the hand that seems
to come in. This Talisman affair is a case in point. The thief was
using his whole arm to get inside the case.”

“That’s probably so,” conceded Douglas, reluctantly. “It isn’t so easy
as I thought.”

Before Westenhanger could elaborate his views, Eileen Cressage came
hurriedly into the room. Her face was flushed with excitement; her
eyes were bright; and her whole carriage showed that she had thrown
off her load of difficulties at last. Westenhanger had never seen her
looking so care-free.

“The _Kestrel’s_ back at last!” she announced breathlessly. “She’s
making for the bay. I saw her from the headland, and hurried back to
the house to tell you; that’s why I’m out of breath. I wanted you to
hear the news at once, because it’s all right now. I’m sure Mrs. Brent
will clear everything up when she comes ashore.”

“That’s the best of news. I am glad, Eileen,” said Douglas, before
Westenhanger could say anything. “You’ve stuck it out like a good ’un,
but it’s about time it stopped.”

Westenhanger added nothing to Douglas’s words. His expression spoke
for him better than anything he could have said.

“I can’t wait here,” Eileen explained rapidly. “I must get down to the
beach and get on board as soon as the yacht comes in. I began to think
she’d never come back. These three days have been like centuries for
slowness.”

“We’ll put you on board,” said Westenhanger. “Come along, Douglas.”

“Thanks. But really I’d rather go by myself, if you’ll put the boat
into the water for me.”

They walked down to the boat-house, got out one of the boats and
brought it round to the tiny jetty for her. She stepped lightly
aboard, waved her thanks, and pulled with easy strokes to the
_Kestrel_, which had just let go her anchor. The two men watched her
get safely on board the yacht and then turned back towards the house.

“I suppose we’ll hear all about it to-night or to-morrow,” hazarded
Douglas, as they left the jetty. “You seem a bit relieved, Conway; and
I feel rather that way myself. It’s been a stiffish three days for a
girl, thanks to Master Freddie.”

“I _am_ relieved,” Westenhanger acknowledged. “I’ve had her troubles
very much on my mind, and I’m only too glad to see light ahead. But
you needn’t expect to learn much about the Talisman business, Douglas;
she never had anything to do with that, you know.”

“At least one part of this infernal mix-up will be straightened out,
though, and that’s always something.”

Westenhanger made a gesture of assent.

“One never knows what may come out, once people start talking,” he
said, hopefully. “It’s quite on the cards we may hit on a new idea,
after we’ve heard Mrs. Brent. She’s the missing witness, the only
person who hasn’t had a chance to tell her story of what happened that
night.”

“Who’s that coming up in the car, I wonder,” said Douglas.

Westenhanger looked across the lawn and saw a motor with a single
passenger at the front door of the house.

“Seems to be Eric Dangerfield.”

“Something wrong with him, then,” Douglas commented. “Look at him
hobbling up the steps with a stick. Seems as if he’d lamed himself a
bit.”

Eric Dangerfield’s figure laboriously ascended the steps and
disappeared into the house.

“Sprained ankle, or something like that,” was Westenhanger’s verdict.
“Well, Douglas, we’ll just have to be patient. There’ll be no ’orrible
revelations for an hour or two at least.”

His guess was quite accurate. Eileen and Mrs. Brent came ashore from
the yacht only in time to dress, and neither of them appeared until
the remainder of the party had assembled. Eric Dangerfield limped into
the dining-room, still using his stick.

“Nothing much,” he explained in answer to a question. “I twisted my
ankle rather badly and had to rest it. That’s why I didn’t get back
here sooner.”

Mrs. Brent took very little part in the conversation at the
dinner-table, but when the servants had left the room after serving
coffee, she glanced round to secure attention and then addressed the
company in general.

“I understand,” she said, with a certain sub-acid tone in her voice,
“that during my absence, Mr. Stickney has been organising a symposium
of sorts. It seems a pity not to give my contribution to the common
stock, even if it is slightly belated. Suppose we all go into the
drawing-room after dinner for a few moments. I shan’t detain you
long.”

It was impossible to learn from Rollo Dangerfield’s face whether or
not he understood her reference. Much to his regret, he explained,
neither he nor his wife could be there. They had a meeting in the
village that evening which in courtesy they must attend.

“I quite understand, Rollo,” Mrs. Brent hastened to reassure him. “You
won’t miss much here, and in any case I can explain the whole thing to
you to-morrow. It’s of no consequence.”

She made no further reference to the matter until the whole party,
with the exception of their host and hostess, had gathered in the
drawing-room. Choosing her favourite chair, she made a sign to Eileen
to sit down beside her, and then waited until the others had grouped
themselves.

“It appears,” she began, frowning in Freddie Stickney’s direction. “It
appears that privacy has gone out of fashion since I went away. That’s
a new phase for Friocksheim, and I don’t feel I’m much to blame for
not anticipating it. Certainly, I didn’t foresee such a state of
affairs, and to that extent I’m responsible for some events which
ought never to have occurred.”

She stared at Freddie as though he were some curious animal which she
was inspecting for the first time.

“It seems,” she went on acidly, “that no one can have any private
affairs now, so I think the best thing is to have a complete
clearing-up of some misunderstandings—is that the right word, Mr.
Stickney?—which have got abroad. I don’t wish to leave any ground for
such things in future. Miss Cressage agrees with me.”

She turned to the girl.

“Tell them the whole affair from start to finish, Eileen.”

Eileen Cressage looked up, but paused for a moment or two before
saying anything. Westenhanger could see that she hated the business,
but was determined to go through with it.

“Some of you know,” she began, “that the other night I lost a lot of
money at bridge. I didn’t realise during the game how big a loss it
was. Very foolish of me, I admit.”

Mrs. Brent interrupted her sharply.

“I think the facts will be quite sufficient, Eileen. I shouldn’t make
any comments, if I were you.”

Eileen accepted the correction, understanding the underlying motive.

“I was taken aback,” she went on, “when I heard how much I owed Mrs.
Caistor Scorton. I don’t wish to keep anything back now. It was far
more than I could pay in any reasonable time. I lost my head, I’m
afraid; I wanted at any cost to avoid a public explanation. So when a
cheque was suggested, I filled one in and handed it over, intending to
explain to Mrs. Caistor Scorton how matters stood, as soon as I could
get her by herself.”

Westenhanger let his eyes wander to Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s face, but
it was absolutely expressionless.

“I felt that was the best thing to do,” Eileen continued. “It avoided
public explanations and unpleasantness for everyone, and it really
made things no worse.”

She paused, and Mrs. Brent took up the story, as though their parts
had been pre-arranged between them.

“I seldom interfere in other people’s affairs. I was brought up to
believe that one shouldn’t be a busybody. But some things seem to me
outside the rules of the game, and then an outsider can take a hand. I
noticed a thing that evening which seemed to me outside the rules.
Taking advantage of a girl in a tight corner is . . . well, I needn’t
comment on it.”

She darted a contemptuous glance at Morchard, without taking any pains
to disguise it.

“That was what happened that evening. Naturally, I stepped in.”

Morchard’s face showed that he had not known this before. He made no
comment, and Mrs. Brent continued.

“I asked Eileen to come to my room after everyone had gone to bed. I
wanted to have a good talk with her; strike while the iron was hot,
you see, and get a promise out of her that she wouldn’t gamble in that
way again. If I’d waited till next morning I wouldn’t have been able
to make such a strong impression.”

She glanced towards Freddie Stickney again.

“I asked her to come to my room without letting anyone know she was
coming, because things like that are better done without the chance of
any other party poking his nose into the affair. It seemed to me quite
a private matter, with which no one else had any concern. Curiously
enough, Mr. Stickney, my views on that point are still unchanged.”

Freddie’s beady eyes were fixed on the carpet. He refused to be drawn.
At a gesture from Mrs. Brent, Eileen continued the narrative.

“I waited until I thought everyone was out of the way. Then I took my
bedroom candle, slipped on my dressing-gown, and made my way to Mrs.
Brent’s room. That was where I was going when Mrs. Caistor Scorton saw
me.”

The girl had got over the worst of her story; she reached a point
where no blame could attach to her, and her voice showed the
difference. At last she was able to shake herself free from
suspicions. Westenhanger noticed that she did not even look in
Freddie’s direction. He had ceased to be of any importance.

“I went down the staircase and along the corridor to Mrs. Brent’s
room. She had been sitting up waiting for me. I’d like to tell you how
kind . . .”

“No comments, please, Eileen,” interjected Mrs. Brent again. “Let us
have the facts.”

The girl’s eyes met Mrs. Brent’s, resisted for a moment, and then
dropped.

“Very well,” she assented. “It’s for you to say. They’ll know how I
feel without my putting it into words. I’ll go on. Mrs. Brent told me
she would pay my debt. She gave me some advice. And she made me
promise two things. The first was that I wouldn’t play bridge again
for stakes higher than I could afford. I promised that. I’d had my
lesson. The second promise was that I wouldn’t mention to anyone
anything that had happened that night. I promised that, too. It seemed
little enough to promise, after her kindness. She laid a good deal of
stress on it. She said she hated to have anything of the kind known.”

“I do,” confirmed Mrs. Brent. “I’ve no desire to publish things of
that sort. It’s a private affair. Of course, I’d no idea then that
privacy was a back number. I’ve learned.”

Eileen took up her narrative again.

“Mrs. Brent hadn’t £200 in notes with her. She gave me a cheque and
told me to go up to London first thing in the morning and pay it into
my account, so as to meet the cheque I had given Mrs. Scorton, in case
it was paid in immediately. Meanwhile, the thunderstorm began.”

Mrs. Brent interposed once more.

“I found the storm was getting rather too much for my nerves after the
first peal or two. Having someone in the room with me helped to steady
things a little; so I asked Miss Cressage to stay with me until the
thunder passed off. She waited with me till some time in the small
hours. Then I let her go; for she had to get some sleep, and she had
to be up in order to catch the first train.”

She broke off and invited Eileen to continue.

“I left Mrs. Brent’s room and went back to my own. Just as I got out
of Mrs. Brent’s room, Helga passed me . . .”

Helga Dangerfield’s face showed complete amazement.

“You saw me?” she demanded. “You must have made a mistake. It was
someone else, surely. Why, I fell asleep at the tail-end of the storm
and didn’t wake up again till morning.”

Eileen looked puzzled.

“You were going towards the Corinthian’s Room, Helga. I thought
perhaps you were looking for a book to read, if the storm had kept you
awake. You were past before you noticed me, I thought; and I was quite
glad you hadn’t seen me, since Mrs. Brent didn’t want anyone to know
I’d been down to see her. You had your blue dressing-gown on. Don’t
you remember?”

Helga Dangerfield shook her head definitely.

“You must have been dreaming, Eileen.”

“Well, it doesn’t matter,” said Eileen, “I’ll go on with the story. I
went up to my room, blew out my candle, switched on my light, and
crept into bed. I didn’t sleep for quite a long time. I was rather
shaken up, you know, between the storm and the things that had
happened. But I dropped off at last, and just wakened in time to catch
the first train.”

She looked round the circle till her eye fell on Eric.

“You remember we went up to town together?”

Eric nodded, but said nothing. Eileen took up the thread again.

“In town, I went straight to my bank and paid in Mrs. Brent’s cheque.
After that I did some shopping. Then I suddenly remembered something.
I never wear jewellery, but I have some things. It struck me that I
might raise something on them and so be able to repay Mrs. Brent part
of her cheque at once. It would be a kind of relief to my mind. She’d
know I was taking things seriously. So I went back to my bank, where I
kept them; took them out; went to Starbecks with them. I’ve dealt with
Starbecks for years. They know me quite well, and they made no
difficulty about it. I didn’t get enough to repay Mrs. Brent entirely,
but I felt it was always something done. As I was coming out of
Starbecks’ door I met Mr. Westenhanger, and we had just time to get to
the station and catch the train.”

Mrs. Brent made a gesture to stop the girl at this point.

“I think that covers the whole question,” she said. “Now I’ve just a
word or two to say. If I had imagined what was going to happen, of
course I’d never have asked Miss Cressage to give me that promise. But
I hardly suppose that any sane person could have foreseen what was
coming. It passes all reasonable bounds. I’ve nothing to say about
Miss Cressage’s views on the matter. Apparently she believed in
keeping private affairs confidential even under very great strain.
She’d given her promise, and she kept it.”

“What I felt,” explained Eileen, “was that I’d given you two promises
together. If I broke one of them straight away, what reliance could
you have placed on my word in the second affair? I had to keep both.
And, of course, I had only to wait for you to come back. Then you’d
let me off my promise, and I could explain everything. It only meant
waiting, I thought. But I hadn’t quite counted on the construction
that would be put on things.”

Her eyes flashed indignantly as she turned to Freddie Stickney.

“I haven’t enjoyed giving these explanations. Probably most of you
haven’t enjoyed listening to them; but I’m sure you’ll understand why
you had to hear them.”

There was an almost inaudible murmur of sympathetic assent from most
of the circle. As it died down, Mrs. Brent closed the incident in a
phrase or two.

“That’s all. Miss Cressage had one serious fault, apparently. She was
over-straight. I shouldn’t have blamed her in the slightest if she’d
told the whole story when she was asked. She preferred to keep the
very letter of her promise. I don’t envy some people their feelings
just now. But perhaps they haven’t any. Toads and so forth are said to
be very insensitive creatures, and the reptiles generally feel little
discomfort. So I am told.”

She took Eileen’s arm gently, and they left the room together.
Undoubtedly, as a creator of discomfort, Mrs. Brent ran Freddie close.
Westenhanger caught Douglas’s eye, and they followed Mrs. Brent.

“Let’s try the garden?” suggested Douglas. “Air in there seems a bit
sultry for my taste. That last whang of Mrs. Brent’s wasn’t perhaps
tactful; but it was nothing to what she might have said if she’d
really let herself go. I’ve never seen her even peeved before; and
to-night she was boiling underneath the surface. Even the trained
observer, Freddie, can hardly have failed to notice the weather
signs.”

“Well, I suppose we’ll be rid of some of them by the first train
to-morrow.”

“No we shan’t! Nobody can leave Friocksheim till this Talisman
business is cleared up. Your ways are not ours, Conway. All the rest
of us are still under suspicion and we’ve got to hang on until the
‘All Clear’ signal goes. Pleasant prospect, isn’t it? Well, we needn’t
talk to ’em more than’s needful.”

Westenhanger looked gloomy.

“There’s only one way out of it, then. We’ve got to find the thief, if
we can, and as quick as we can.”

“Right you are, but easier said than done.” Douglas’s voice did not
sound very hopeful. “Another canter in the Elimination Stakes to begin
with?”

“All right. We’ll be rigid this time. To start with, we can put aside
as completely cleared: ourselves, Mr. and Mrs. Dangerfield, Mrs.
Brent, Nina, Cynthia, and Eileen Cressage. Do you O.K. that?”

Douglas acquiesced with a nod.

“No doubt in these cases. I’m going on character as much as alibis and
so forth. Let’s sit down.”

They found a garden seat which was dry and seated themselves.

“Mrs. Scorton? No motive that I can see. I think she drops out also.”

“Agreed.”

“Then there’s Morchard.” An angry tone came into Westenhanger’s voice.
“He’s out of it too. You see why? Well, naturally he was the man Mrs.
Brent was getting at. Didn’t you see he offered to give Eileen the
money if she’d come to his room? He’d be waiting there for her, not
roaming about the house picking up the Talisman. Obvious, I think.
Unless . . . Could he have taken it and meant to throw suspicion on
her? No, he wouldn’t know she had been out of her room at all that
night. No, that’s wrong. We can leave Morchard out of it.”

Douglas kicked angrily at the ground.

“The infernal thing is that one can do nothing to Morchard. The least
row would lead to the devil of a scandal, and Eileen would suffer.
It’s Freddie’s case over again, only fifty times worse. Our hands are
tied.”

“That’s so,” said Westenhanger, shortly. “Let’s go on.”

Quite evidently he disliked the whole subject.

“That leaves still in the net,” he continued, “Wraxall for one. I’m
prejudiced in favour of Wraxall; but if he’d planned that theft
beforehand, he’d have fixed up some very neat, circumstantial story to
account for all his night’s doings, you may be sure. And he
undoubtedly had the most complete tale of the lot. I’m morally sure he
didn’t do it; but there’s a loop-hole all the same. Besides, we can’t
afford to ignore possible motives, and there’s no question that he
came here for one purpose only—to get the Talisman. Leave Wraxall in,
eh? We’re trying to be inclusive, remember.”

“Wraxall’s a good sort,” was Douglas’s verdict. “I can’t think he’s
the man we’re after. But leave him in, since we can’t count him as
definitely cleared.”

“Freddie?”

“I’m all for keeping Freddie under observation. I don’t say he took
the thing, of course. Can’t go that length. But the line he’s followed
all along has been just the sort of thing he might have been expected
to do, if he were the man we want. Who would suspect him, when he
volunteered as a sleuth from Sleuth Town? Good bit of camouflage for a
criminal, I think. And he had a very poor account to give of himself
when it came to the pinch, very thin. Freddie stays in, so far as I’m
concerned.”

“My feeling too. Well, that leaves only two more, both Dangerfields:
Eric and Helga. I’m not an enthusiast for Eric. Rather a rotter, it
seems to me. But there’s nothing very definite against him; we agreed
on that before.”

“Leave him in, then,” Douglas decided. “We can’t say more than ‘not
proven’ for him, can we?”

“That brings us to Helga. I say, Douglas, did you make anything of
that affair to-night? The girl wasn’t lying. Neither was Eileen.”

“That was what I felt,” concurred Douglas. “Neither of ’em was lying,
to my mind. And yet the thing seems flatly impossible unless one of
them was giving the truth a pretty wide miss.”

“It might have been someone else in a similar dressing-gown,”
suggested Westenhanger, half-heartedly.

“No good, Conway. The only other women available are Mrs. Dangerfield
and Mrs. Scorton. They’re both rather under middle height. Helga’s a
well-built girl, taller than the average. There could be no mistake
about it.”

Westenhanger cogitated for a time.

“I’ve got it!” he said, at last. “It’s self-evident. Eileen was wide
awake, obviously. But suppose Helga walks in her sleep? She wouldn’t
know she’d been there at all, if she got back to bed eventually
without waking up. That would account for the affair, wouldn’t it?
It’s the only simple solution. It might even explain other things as
well.”

He ruminated for a few more seconds before continuing.

“I’ll ask Eileen about it to-morrow. She was excited at that time, or
she’d probably have spotted it as somnambulism at once. Perhaps she’ll
remember something if she thinks over it. This may turn out to be the
key to the whole damned thing.”



Chapter X

Mrs. Brent’s intervention did nothing to relax the tension in the
social atmosphere of Friocksheim; on the contrary, it increased the
general discomfort of the situation. Up to the moment of her
reappearance, some attempt had been made, by common consent, to smooth
over the awkwardness of things; but after her revelations it was
inevitable that the guests should separate into inimical camps. On the
surface a casual observer might have detected nothing amiss, since any
display of open animosity would have made inevitable the scandal which
all of them wished to avoid. Freddie Stickney and Morchard were
treated with a distant and rigid courtesy which in itself emphasised
the existence of new conditions. Beyond that, they were ignored by
almost all the others. Mrs. Caistor Scorton alone seemed to keep them
on the old footing, and she thus served as a link between the two
parties.

How much Rollo Dangerfield knew—or suspected—Westenhanger was unable
to conjecture. Mrs. Brent, Helga, or Eric might have opened the old
man’s eyes. Whether they had done so or not, his old-fashioned
courtesy seemed to make no distinctions among his guests; and
Westenhanger was left in doubt as to whether Rollo was still in
complete ignorance or else, knowing the facts, he put his duties as a
host before his private feelings as regarded Morchard and Freddie.

On the morning after the _Kestrel’s_ arrival, Westenhanger attached
himself to Eileen and persuaded her to go with him to a quiet part of
the gardens, where they were unlikely to be interrupted. He was
anxious to secure what information he could about the appearance of
Helga Dangerfield on the night of the storm, and he lost very little
time in coming to the point.

“I was rather puzzled by that incident you mentioned last night,” he
said, as they picked out a secluded seat. “Your meeting Helga in the
corridor, I mean. Anyone could see that you were both telling the
truth, and yet it sounds a bit impossible, doesn’t it?”

“I was puzzled, too. I saw her quite plainly, hardly much farther off
than you are just now.”

“Had you both got candles?”

“No, she had none; but I saw her quite distinctly by the light of my
own.”

“The electric lights weren’t on?”

“No. But I could see perfectly plainly, except that a draught made my
candle flicker. I recognised her dressing-gown. And no one could
mistake her height and her walk—you know that way she carries herself,
quite unmistakable, so graceful. Oh, it was she, undoubtedly.”

“Did you see her face, by any chance? Did she look towards you?”

“No. She passed by as if she hadn’t noticed me. I thought she hadn’t.”

“With your light in your hand? Curious, isn’t it?”

Eileen considered the matter for some seconds without replying. Then
her face lighted up.

“Oh, now I see what you mean! Of course! It was stupid of me not to
think of that immediately. She was walking in her sleep?”

“It would account for the affair, if she were? I mean, that idea fits
with what you remember, does it?”

“Of course it does! I ought to have thought of it for myself, at once.
But I never knew anyone who walked in their sleep. It’s always been
outside my experience, and I rather disbelieved most of the tales I’ve
heard about it. So it didn’t suggest itself to me until you mentioned
the candle in my hand. Of course, then I saw at once that she couldn’t
help seeing me if she had been awake.”

“Suppose we assume she’s a somnambulist. She doesn’t know she walks in
her sleep. That’s evident. For if she knows she’s subject to it, she’d
have seen the explanation for herself at once; whereas she was just as
puzzled as you were over the thing. Now doesn’t that suggest something
further to you?”

Eileen knitted her brows for a moment or two before she saw his
meaning.

“The Talisman?” she asked finally.

“Yes. Suppose she took it away that night. She may have concealed it
somewhere and clean forgotten—or never known, rather—that she had ever
touched it.”

The girl’s face showed her surprise at this suggestion.

“Do you know, that’s wonderfully clever! I really believe you’ve come
very near the mark. And wouldn’t it be a relief if it turned out to be
true? There’d be no thief after all.”

“If some of them turned out to be thieves, I don’t know that it would
lower them much in my opinion now,” Westenhanger observed,
elliptically.

Eileen avoided a direct reply.

“What I meant was that this cloud of suspicion would be swept away and
most of us could get back to normal again. It’s no use pretending that
we’re enjoying Friocksheim just now.”

Before Westenhanger could say anything further, Nina Lindale appeared,
crossing the lawn before them. Eileen beckoned to her.

“Nina, did you borrow my mirror by any chance?”

Nina Lindale shook her head.

“No, never saw it. You mean your silver one with your initials on the
back? It was on your dressing-table a couple of days ago.”

“Perhaps Cynthia’s got it,” Eileen conjectured.

“She’s just behind me,” Nina told her. “You can ask her when she comes
along. Tell her I’ve gone down to the cove, if she asks. We’re going
to bathe.”

She nodded her thanks and took the path leading to the bathing-place.
A few minutes after she had gone, Cynthia appeared in her turn; but
she also failed to throw any light on the matter of the mirror.

“Sorry I can’t help, but I never set my eyes on the thing. Most
annoying to have it go amissing, Eileen. Take mine any time you want
it.”

“Thanks. I can’t imagine what’s become of my own, though. It’s not the
sort of thing one mislays.”

“Oh, it’ll turn up all right. I shouldn’t worry. Won’t you people come
down and bathe? It’s just the morning for it.”

They allowed themselves to be persuaded.

Westenhanger paid little attention to the incident of the mirror. His
mind was busy with a scheme which had been concerted between himself
and Douglas on the previous night. The list of suspects had now been
reduced to four; and it only remained to discover the left-handed
person in this limited group.

A midday change in the weather favoured their plans. During lunch a
thin rain began, and it soon became evident that the afternoon would
be wet. With a little tactful management, the two men succeeded in
carrying off Wraxall and Eric Dangerfield to the billiard-room.

“What about it?” inquired Douglas, indicating the cue-rack.

Eric shook his head with a smile.

“Leave me out,” he said, indicating his lame ankle. “I can’t stand on
two feet with any comfort yet, much less lean over the table.”

“You, then, Wraxall?” Douglas suggested.

But the American declined his offer.

“I’ve seen you play. I’m not in your class.”

“Give you a reasonable number of points to make a game of it.”

It was quite obvious that Wraxall did not care to play, and Douglas
refrained from pressing him. Westenhanger looked out of the window.

“A soaker of a day! We’ll have to put in the time somehow. Come along,
Douglas. We’re bored stiff. Trot out some of your parlour tricks and
keep us amused. Anything’s better than nothing.”

“I don’t quite like the way you put it, Conway,” protested Douglas,
with a grin. “You haven’t just got the knack of the felicitous phrase,
as it were. You mean well, and all that; but somehow you don’t just
bring it off.”

“Produce you’re latest, anyhow. The only stipulation I make is that
you don’t try to interest us in Find the Lady or the Elusive Pea.
These are barred. But if you can make any money off me by other
methods, you’re welcome to it.”

He sat down and the others followed his example. Douglas considered
for a moment and then took a Swan vesta box from his pocket.

“My sleight of hand’s a bit rusty, I’m afraid,” he apologised. “But
perhaps I might manage to pull off this one if you haven’t seen it
before. Got a florin by any chance, Wraxall?”

The American searched his pockets.

“A florin,” he inquired, “that’s what you call a two-shilling piece,
isn’t it? This coinage of yours always makes me want to think before I
can be sure about it.”

He found his florin and handed it across to Douglas, who refused it.

“No,” he explained, “I don’t want you to say I palmed the thing.
Observe carefully.”

He slid the match-box half open and, holding the box so that they
could all see plainly, he placed a florin of his own among the
matches.

“My coin’s under the picture of the Swan, you see?”

He closed the box and handed it over to Wraxall.

“Now put your florin in at the other end of the box. You can mark your
coin, if you like.”

Wraxall contented himself with noting the date of the florin before
putting it in.

“Now shut the box,” directed Douglas, “and hand it over to me. Just
chuck it across.”

Wraxall did so. Douglas caught it and held it out so that it was well
away from his sleeve.

“This is the sticky bit,” he announced. “Are you all sure that both
coins are in the box? Quite sure? Well, seeing’s believing. Have a
look.”

Holding the box in one hand, he slid the inner case forward with his
finger until one coin showed. Then, without using his left hand, he
reversed the box and showed the other end open, so that they could
satisfy themselves that the two coins were still there.

“All content? Four bob in the box? I’ll just show you them again.”

He did so. As he closed the box for the last time, his voice changed
as though he were trying to suppress his satisfaction at having got
through his sleight of hand without detection.

“Now, Wraxall. I’ll sell you the box as it stands for three bob. Take
the offer?”

Wraxall pondered for an instant.

“It’s this coinage bother,” he explained. “Three bob? That’s three
shillings, isn’t it?”

“Yes. I’m offering to self you the thing for three shillings. You
think it contains four shillings—two florins. I don’t guarantee that.
I simply sell the box, matches included with the other contents.
Going . . . going . . .”

“I take you!” snapped Wraxall, certain that he would have detected any
legerdemain.

“Right-o!” agreed Douglas, pleasantly. “You win. Here’s the box. I’ll
just go through the formality of collecting your three bob, though.”

He tossed the box over to Wraxall, who caught it and paid Douglas
three shillings. The conjurer grinned mockingly.

“Quite satisfied with your bargain? Have a look inside the box. Both
florins present and correct? You’ll be glad to see _your own one
again_!”

Wraxall saw the point almost immediately.

“Confound you, Fairmile! You’ve had the nerve to sell me my own
florin! So I’ve paid three shillings for _your_ florin. Is that it?
And you muddled me up with all this talk about sleight of hand. That’s
neat. That’s very neat indeed.”

“Well, here’s your three shillings,” said Douglas tossing them across
one by one. “Now I’ll take my florin and we’re back at the start
again. I’d be ashamed to rob anyone by that trick.”

“You mean you’d hate to take advantage of the weak-minded?” corrected
the American, accepting his discomfiture with a smile.

“No. That trick’s really an obstinacy corrector. You’d be astonished
to see how often it comes off—five times out of six at the lowest,
I’ve found. Well, here’s another.”

He turned to Eric Dangerfield.

“Got four pennies by any chance.”

Eric searched his pockets and found the required coins.

“Now to avoid disputes later,” Douglas explained, “you’ll count ’em
out one by one on to the table beside you.”

Eric carefully counted out the four coins, putting them down one at a
time.

“Four, I make it,” he stated.

Douglas held out his hand with the fingers outspread.

“See it? Quite empty? No trap-doors or magic cabinets concealed
anywhere? See the back too? Well, put your pennies into my palm. . . .
I now close my hand. I take out my handkerchief. I shake it, showing
that no coin is concealed in it. I cover my hand. Now, I say I’ve got
_five_ pennies in my hand. You can take off the handkerchief, if you
like. _Five_ pennies. Give me a bob if I’m wrong?”

Eric Dangerfield had been watching closely.

“All right,” he agreed.

“Well, then. I _am_ wrong, and you owe me a bob. I didn’t bet I was
right. I said, ‘Give me a bob if I’m _wrong_.’”

Eric Dangerfield fished out a shilling but Douglas refused to take it.
He was about to continue the prearranged series of tests when, to his
surprise, Westenhanger introduced a variation in the programme.

“Before I forget, Douglas, you might give me the name of the place
where you got that new racket. I want to make a note of it.”

He felt in his pockets, then applied to Eric.

“Got a fountain pen, by any chance, Dangerfield?”

Eric took one from his waistcoat pocket and offered it to
Westenhanger, who had pulled out a piece of paper. Westenhanger put
out his hand and then withdrew it again.

“I hate using anyone else’s pen for fear of spoiling the nib. I write
heavier than most people. Would you mind jotting the address down?”

Eric wrote down the address which Douglas gave, and both men noted
that he used his pen in the normal way. Westenhanger put the paper in
his pocket and again surprised Douglas by going to the window and
looking out.

“It’s clearing up a bit. What about some fresh air, Douglas?”

This was the prearranged signal for breaking off operations; but
Douglas was puzzled by its coming so early.

“Oh, all right,” he agreed. “If you want to get soaked, I don’t mind.”

Eric could not be expected to join them, and Wraxall, for the sake of
politeness, had to stay behind to keep the lame man company. As soon
as they were well away from the house, Douglas showed his surprise.

“You broke that off a bit soon, Conway. Of course, I’m quite
satisfied. They’re both right-handed. Wraxall handed the box and
grabbed at the shillings quite according to plan; and Dangerfield
counted his lot of coins in the normal way. But I’d liked to have
worked a few more stunts on them, just for certainty’s sake.”

“Not worth while,” Westenhanger said. “I’ve got something absolutely
certain to go on. As it happens, you’re wrong, Douglas. Wraxall is
right-handed. But the other fellow is ambidextrous. He uses his right
hand for hand-movements; but when his arm comes in, he’s left-handed.”

“How do you make that out?” demanded Douglas in surprise.

“Just an accidental observation. He carries his fountain pen in his
right-hand waistcoat pocket. You and I carry ours in the left pocket,
so as to get at it easily with our right hands. He uses his left hand
to take it from his pocket, and then he passes the pen to his right
hand before he uses it. You see he uses his arm in taking it out, and
he’s left-armed. That’s absolutely conclusive to my mind, and I didn’t
want to run any chance of arousing suspicion by going through the
whole programme. I think we’ve got our man.”

“That was pretty cute. I was watching him, but I didn’t spot the
thing, although I was on the look-out for it.”

“It was just a bit of luck. Nothing to boast about.”

Douglas considered for a time.

“Well, where do we stand? Motive? He’s hard up and lost a lot at
cards. Opportunity? He was wandering about the house late that night.
Besides, his room is close to the one the Talisman was in. He’s
left-armed—the type we’re looking for. He went up to town next
morning—possibly to get the thing out of the house for fear of a
search, even if he didn’t dispose of it in some way then—pawning or
some such business. And, by the way, he’s got lamed in some way. I
wonder if there is a man-trap after all, and he got mixed up in it
slightly.”

Westenhanger listened to this catalogue with a gloomy face.

“There isn’t an atom of real proof in the whole lot. We could never
satisfy anyone on the strength of that stuff alone. I’d never mention
a word to anyone about it, Douglas; because we must have definite
proof. And I don’t quite see our next move.”

“Watch him, and keep on watching, on the chance of something turning
up, I suppose.”

“It’s a poor chance,” said Westenhanger.

That idea remained with him for the rest of the day. The step-by-step
process of elimination had been carried through with complete success;
but it was useless to pretend to himself that the result was
conclusive evidence. At the best it became a case of “Not Proven”: a
moral certainty, perhaps, but nothing more. Something further was
needed to establish the identity of the culprit beyond doubt. And the
more he puzzled over the problem, the less chance could he see of
bringing the thing home. One might devise a scheme for trapping a
fellow-guest; but how could one out-manœuvre a man working on his own
ground with complete knowledge of all the possibilities of the
environment?

Even when he went to bed, Westenhanger lay awake seeking some solution
of the problem. At last he realised that he was unlikely to get any
further forward; but by that time he had fretted himself into a state
of complete wakefulness.

“No use going on like this,” he reflected at last. “I must get
something to take my mind off the thing. It’s infernally tantalising
to be so near it and yet not to hit on the right track. I’ll go down
to the library and get a book. I can read myself to sleep all
right—push the affair out of my thoughts. If I lie here I’ll simply
worry at it till morning.”

He got up and put on his dressing-gown. His watch showed him that it
was in the small hours; and all the house was quiet. He opened his
door cautiously, took his candle with him, and went down the stairs.

When he reached the hall below, he was surprised to find a light
shining from the open door of old Dangerfield’s study; and as he came
opposite the room he looked in. Rollo was sitting, fully dressed,
beside the fire; and at the sound of Westenhanger’s approach he
glanced up. Westenhanger, feeling that his midnight perambulations
demanded some explanation, turned into the study. Rollo showed no
surprise but invited him to sit down on the opposite side of the
hearth.

“Got a touch of insomnia, to-night,” explained Westenhanger, “so I
thought I’d come down for a book and see if I could read myself to
sleep. I was just on the way to the library when I saw the light in
here.”

Rollo’s face expressed some concern.

“I hope you aren’t subject to it,” he said. “Anything going wrong with
one’s sleep is a terrible thing.”

Westenhanger detected more feeling in the comment than he had
expected; and for a moment he was surprised. Then it flashed across
his mind that Rollo probably knew of Helga’s somnambulism and had thus
a keener interest in such matters than most people. He hastened to
reassure the old man.

“No; it’s not chronic. Just a touch of it one gets at times.”

A fleeting expression changed Rollo Dangerfield’s face for an instant;
but it was gone before Westenhanger could identify it.

“I sometimes get it myself when I’m worried,” said old Dangerfield.
“It’s a bad business if it gets a firm hold on one. You’re not worried
about anything, I hope?” he added, sympathetically.

Westenhanger hardly cared to tell a downright lie.

“Oh, nothing in particular, nothing to do with my own affairs,” he
said, trying to pass the matter off lightly.

But Rollo fastened upon the tacit admission.

“You are worried, then? I’m very sorry. Nothing serious, I trust?”

Then, as if suddenly struck by a thought, he demanded:

“It’s not this Talisman affair, is it?”

Taken by surprise, Westenhanger’s face betrayed him. Rollo’s eyes
missed nothing.

“You really mustn’t worry over that. The Talisman is all right, I
assure you. If that were the only worry I had, I should count myself
fortunate.”

He broke off in order to listen for something; and Westenhanger could
see that his ears were strained to catch some faint sound, which he
evidently expected. After a few seconds the old man’s vigilance seemed
to relax; his eyes still turned to the open door, but apparently he
was satisfied that nothing was coming. Westenhanger had little
difficulty in reading the situation. Rollo was on guard to watch over
his daughter if she found her way downstairs during her sleep-walking.
Then, suddenly, it occurred to him that Rollo’s post lay on the road
to the Corinthian’s Room. Could it be that the old man had some idea
that Helga’s somnambulism was connected with the loss of the Talisman?
She might have taken it during her sleep, and he might be watching her
to discover, if possible, where she had concealed it. He resolved to
push his inquiries, even at the cost of some failure in courtesy.

“I believe, Mr. Dangerfield, that you know all the time what has
become of the Talisman. Is that why its disappearance doesn’t worry
you?”

Rollo’s eyes grew suddenly stern.

“Do you suggest that I am shielding anyone?” he demanded, bluntly.
“That’s rather a grave charge.”

“It wasn’t brought by me,” Westenhanger exclaimed. Put in that precise
form, the matter took on an aspect which he had not considered at all.
“Certainly I never suggested such a thing! I never so much as thought
of it.”

Rollo acknowledged this with a slight inclination of his head. Then,
after a time, he spoke again.

“I could hardly complain if some such idea came into your mind. But no
matter how strong the motive, I doubt if I would yield to it in this
case. I would never dream of letting a guest of mine lie under
suspicion when a word from me would clear up the matter. Never.
Besides, whom could I shield?”

He met Westenhanger’s eye frankly.

“There are only two possible people: Eric and Helga. You might suspect
either of them; but what does it amount to? Eric could have taken the
thing, undoubtedly. He may have reasons for taking it. He’s
left-handed, like the thief. . . .”

“You knew the thief was left-handed?” asked Westenhanger in surprise.

“So did you, evidently,” the old man retorted, unmoved. “It was
obvious to anyone who saw how the cabinet was opened.”

“Yes,” admitted Westenhanger, rather crestfallen to find that another
person had arrived at the same conclusion by the same line of
reasoning.

“But Eric didn’t take the Talisman,” the old man continued. “You will
have to take my word for that. I can’t, of course, prove it to you.
It’s a difficult business, proving a negative. But I give you my word
of honour that Eric didn’t take it. Eric knows what he knows. He
wouldn’t take it.”

“You mean the Dangerfield Secret?” demanded Westenhanger, astonished
to find that matter cropping up in this connection.

“If you choose to call it so,” said old Rollo, dismissing the matter
by his tone. “But if I am not supposed to be shielding Eric—and I am
not shielding him, as I told you—then it must be . . .”

He broke off sharply and held up his hand in caution. Westenhanger,
listening with all his ears, heard the faint sound of a step on the
staircase. Rollo rose silently to his feet with another gesture of
warning and stepped lightly over to the door. Almost as he reached it,
Helga’s figure appeared in the corridor. She passed without a look
aside, though the glare of the lighted room fell full on her face as
she went by.

Old Rollo softly switched on the corridor lights and fell in behind
her. Westenhanger, picking his steps with caution, followed. Helga,
unconscious of their presence, led them down to the door of the
Corinthian’s Room, which she entered. Westenhanger had a hope that
possibly her movements might throw light upon the mystery; but when he
reached the door, Rollo had switched on the lights, and it soon grew
clear that she had no interest in the cabinet. She wandered aimlessly
about the room for a time, then returned to the door and came out
again, the two men standing aside to let her pass.

Rollo waited until she had gone some distance down the corridor, then
he whispered to Westenhanger.

“Please put out the lights; I must see her safely back to her room.”

Their figures retreated down the stretch, turned at the staircase and
disappeared. Westenhanger waited for a time. Then, remembering the
original object of his journey, he passed into the library, selected a
book, and went upstairs to his room, after extinguishing the lights.
But his book helped him very little.

“Old Rollo was speaking the truth, I’m sure. He doesn’t believe Eric’s
mixed up in the thing at all,” he mused. “But that doesn’t necessarily
prove that Eric didn’t take it after all. We’ve eliminated everyone
except Eric. He’s the only one who fits the facts. And yet old
Dangerfield spoke as if he had absolute certainty. What was it he
said? ‘He knows what he knows.’ But what does he know? This
Dangerfield Secret? Is there some deadly business connected with the
guarding of the Talisman, so dangerous that no one would risk touching
it ‘if he knows what he knows’? The old man, if I read him right,
isn’t a mystery-monger for the sheer love of it. There never was a
less theatrical person; he’s natural all through, and absolutely
straight.”

His thoughts turned to the scene he had just witnessed.

“No wonder the poor old chap’s worried. A sleep-walking daughter is
enough to worry anyone. There’s no saying what mischief she might get
into.”

A fresh line opened up his mind.

“He said he wasn’t shielding anyone. Did he mean merely that he wasn’t
covering up a theft? If Helga took the thing while she was asleep,
there would be no question of ‘shielding’ at all. I wish that girl
hadn’t arrived just when she did. She interrupted him just at the
critical moment. Perhaps he knows she took it and is simply waiting to
get it back eventually. That would account for all this coolness under
a huge loss. It wouldn’t be a real loss at all. The thing’s bound to
be somewhere near by; it’s only a case of laying hands on it
eventually. She’d be sure to give it away sooner or later if she goes
on sleep-walking. And that’s one of the reasons why he was watching
for her to-night, perhaps.”



Chapter XI

On the following day, Westenhanger took the earliest opportunity of
informing Douglas about the developments in the night. He had been
strongly impressed by old Dangerfield’s denial of Eric’s
responsibility, and he felt that it would be unfair to suppress this
information and so leave suspicion afloat in his friend’s mind.

“Well, we can take the old man’s word for it,” was Douglas’s verdict,
when he had heard the whole story. “He wouldn’t tell a lie, I’m sure
of that. And, apparently, from what you say, he thought he had good
enough grounds, though he didn’t throw much light on them.”

“He convinced me. I’m quite satisfied, now, we’re on the wrong track.”

“Then the great elimination stunt has been a wash-out?”

Westenhanger gloomily accepted this estimate.

“It’s landed us with the wrong man. I can’t help feeling that,” he
said. “By the way, Douglas, is Helga left-handed by any chance?”

“No. I’ve played golf and tennis with her, and she’s as right-handed
as anyone, as far as I can see.”

“Then we can exclude her.”

“So it’s a case of the Ten Little Nigger Boys—‘and then there was
none’?”

“It looks like it. Elimination’s a sound enough system; but we’ve gone
off the track somewhere, evidently. We started with three tests,
didn’t we? Left-handedness—Motive—and Opportunity. I still believe in
the left-handedness. It’s the only definite thing we’ve got, even if
it has proved a wash-out in this Eric affair.”

Douglas nodded assent to this.

“Then there must be something wrong with the others, evidently.
Suppose we drop the opportunity factor. Really, anyone might have been
abroad that night and no one would know about it except by chance.”

“Right.”

“That leaves motive. I don’t see how we’re going to get beyond our
earlier notions on that point.”

“Slipped a cog, somewhere, then? Just what I was thinking. And I think
I know where it slipped. I’ve seen something that made me sit up
somewhat. Let’s stick to left-handedness as a sure winner, for a
change, and see if I can’t throw some light on things.”

“What did you see?”

Douglas lit a cigarette before replying.

“Last night,” he went on, “while you and Eileen were wandering around
outside, admiring the moon after dinner, our three pariahs—Freddie,
Morchard, and Mrs. Scorton—got up a little game of cut-throat. I
expect they felt a bit chary of asking any of the rest of us to make
up a four. At any rate, they were playing three-handed, and I happened
to be sitting across the room. I wasn’t so engrossed in Cynthia’s
conversation that I couldn’t keep one eye on their table now and
again.”

“Get on with it,” advised Westenhanger.

“Now this is what I saw,” continued Douglas, seriously. “Freddie and
Morchard are normal, beyond a doubt. I watched ’em very carefully, and
that’s a cert. But the fair lady deals with her left hand. Strange I
never noticed it before; but one seldom looks at a dealer, except
casually, I suppose. However, there it is.”

Westenhanger considered the matter for a time without comment.

“There’s no motive,” he concluded. Then his memory spontaneously threw
up the incident of Eileen Cressage’s mirror. “But perhaps that’s where
we went wrong. We’ve been on the hunt for a motive the whole time,
Douglas. What about scrapping that notion and trying kleptomania for a
change?”

“I was just working up to that point myself.”

“Well, Eileen’s silver mirror was taken from her room the other day.
That’s another motiveless affair—even more so than the Talisman.”

“Ah, that puts a new face on things. I didn’t know about that. And I
can put something else in the kitty, judging from that. Mrs. Brent’s
gold wrist-watch has gone astray. She’s been hunting for it all over
the place. Of course I never thought of it having been taken. But this
mirror-affair connects ’em up nicely. It’s just the pointless sort of
snatching that one might expect, if your notion’s right.”

“Well, don’t let’s be in too much of a hurry this time,” cautioned
Westenhanger. “We made average asses of ourselves with our last dip in
the lucky-bag. It looks as if we might be nearer the centre this time;
but we’re up against the same old bother. How’re we going to prove
anything?”

Douglas moved uneasily in his seat.

“I’m not over-keen on the job, Conway, and that’s a fact. The only way
of clearing the thing up is to watch her. And I don’t quite fancy the
job of spy.”

“No more do I. But if her hands are clean, watching won’t do any harm
so long as nobody else knows about it. And if she’s the thief, she
deserves all she gets. She did all she could to put the blame at
Eileen’s door—don’t forget that, Douglas. And if you do, I’m not
likely to let it slip my memory. That was outside the rules of the
game, as Mrs. Brent says.”

Somewhat ruefully, Douglas admitted the justice of this view.

“I suppose you’re right, Conway. I see your case all right. But,” he
added firmly, “not even the best of causes is going to make me put on
false whiskers or reach-me-downs. Worming one’s way into people’s
confidence is also barred. Likewise overhearing conversations.
Anything in the way of measuring foot-prints or hanging around pubs,
will be cheerfully carried out; but nothing of an ungenteel nature
will be handled by this firm. That’s that!”

“Don’t worry, Douglas. It won’t even run to a false nose. All I
propose to do is to keep my eyes open.”

“Dashed moderate, I call it. Trade Union hours, then. You can have the
night shift if you like. I feel generous this morning.”

Westenhanger guessed what was at the back of Douglas’s reluctance.

“Get one thing clearly into your mind, Douglas. You’re not spying on a
woman—you’re watching for a thief. Give chivalry a miss. It’s quite
out of place after what’s happened.”

“Very well,” Douglas conceded, “if you put it that way I suppose it
can be done. I’ll regard it partly as a medical case: Kleptomania—its
Cause, Detection, and Cure. That makes it seem a bit more respectable.
Frankly, Conway, it’s not a job I like very much.”

“I don’t revel in it,” Westenhanger admitted, gruffly. “But I’m going
to see it through, if I can. Somebody ought to pay for the trouble
they’ve caused.”

Douglas looked away.

“Well,” he said, at last, “I suppose if it had been Cynthia instead of
Eileen I’d be inclined to go in with both feet. I see your point,
Conway. I’ll keep my eyes open.”

Westenhanger made no reply.

When he considered the matter later on, Conway Westenhanger had to
admit to himself that he had embarked upon a forlorn hope. Nothing but
pure luck was likely to bring the thing to success. And the chances
against any result seemed tremendous. He could not dog his quarry
continuously for any length of time, since that would inevitably lead
to a disclosure of his intentions. For a large part of the day and
during most of the night Mrs. Caistor Scorton would be outside his
sphere of observation, and that left him very little chance of
success. The possibility of enlisting assistance he rejected
immediately. None of the party was likely to be useful. Eileen was the
only one whom he might have approached in the matter and the relations
between her and Mrs. Caistor Scorton made her worse than useless for
that particular purpose, apart from all other objections to the idea.
Westenhanger resigned himself to waiting for the help of chance, with
a full appreciation of the odds against success.

That night he and Douglas sat up later than usual. All the other
guests had gone earlier to bed and the house was dark. As the two men
came out into the corridor they found the door of Rollo Dangerfield’s
study wide open, and a beam of light shone from it across the floor.

“The old man’s on guard again,” Westenhanger hazarded to Douglas in a
low voice. “He’s having a worrying time, I’m afraid. Hard lines having
a thing like that on one’s shoulders.”

But when they passed the open door they found Eric on the watch
instead of his uncle. He wished them good-night as they went by, but
showed no desire for their company.

“They’re taking it in turns, evidently,” Douglas guessed as they went
up the stairs. “Ah! perhaps that accounts for Eric being about in the
small hours, that night of the storm. It may have been his turn for
duty. We don’t know how long this affair has been going on.”

“That’s probably it,” Westenhanger agreed. “But if he were sitting up
how did the thief get into the Corinthian’s Room undetected?”

“Oh, I expect Helga only walks about once in the night; and once
they’ve seen her safe back to her room they can go to bed themselves.
After that, the coast would be clear. You remember I saw the Talisman
in its place about one in the morning?”

Westenhanger went to bed that night with the consciousness that he had
accomplished absolutely nothing during the day. He had trusted to
luck, but luck had not served. His hopes were gradually lessening as
time went on.

“Something may turn up,” he reflected, without optimism, as he
undressed.

Something did “turn up”; but it was the last thing that he could have
foreseen. On coming down to breakfast next morning he found Freddie
Stickney busily spreading the news to Nina, Cynthia and Douglas.

“Heard the latest?” Freddie demanded as Westenhanger entered the room.
“The Talisman’s turned up again—safe in its cabinet once more, just as
old Dangerfield prophesied.”

“Who told you that?”

Westenhanger was completely taken aback by the news.

“Oh, it’s all right,” Freddie assured him. “You don’t catch me
swallowing things on mere hearsay. I’ve been along to the Corinthian’s
Room myself and had a look. And there it is, as large as life. Stuck
under the glass bell, just as it used to be.”

Westenhanger took his seat at the table without comment. This latest
episode in the chain of events seemed beyond understanding. Given that
a thief had taken the Talisman, why had the thing come back at all?
All that the thief had to do was to leave it in its original place of
concealment, if he feared detection. To put it back in the cabinet was
to run a second risk of being discovered, especially now that one of
the Dangerfields was on guard over Helga each night. And if it was not
a case of theft, why remove the thing at all? Before he could continue
his line of thought he was interrupted.

“What do you make of it?” Freddie was taking up his rôle of general
inquisitor once more. “It seems a bit rum, doesn’t it? And old
Dangerfield’s had the laugh, after all. He swore it would turn up
again—and here it is! Queer, eh?”

“Very strange,” Westenhanger agreed coldly.

Freddie was outside the scope of suspicion now, but Westenhanger had
other reasons for disliking him. And what infernal impudence of the
little brute to start this kind of thing again after the fiasco of his
last effort in the business. Freddie, however, was not to be
discouraged by coldness. His bright little eyes flickered from face to
face, and he continued his remarks quite unperturbed by the obviously
hostile atmosphere.

“What’s that old tag about the man who finds a thing being the one who
knows where to look for it?” he went on. “I begin to think it’s a
practical joke after all. The old man’s been pulling our legs! He laid
off all that stuff about the Talisman being able to look after itself.
Then he took it away himself that night, eh? And now he brings it back
again, and he laughs in his sleeve at us. How’s that, umpire?”

He glanced round the table for applause, but received none.

“If you ask me, Freddie,” Douglas pronounced bluntly, “it proves two
things up to the hilt. One is that you have the nerve to sit down at
breakfast and criticise your host behind his back. The other is that
you don’t know Mr. Dangerfield. He’s the last man who’d play a silly
game of that sort. Anyone with two ounces of grey matter in his skull
would see that.”

Douglas’s rebuke would have silenced most people, but Freddie’s skin
was proof against even this attack.

“Think so?” he asked blandly. “Well, what better theory have you got
yourself?”

Douglas took no notice of the query.

“Well, I’m very glad Mr. Dangerfield has got it back,” Nina said,
ignoring Freddie’s remark. “It’s been so uncomfortable all the time to
feel that he’d lost a thing like that—a thing he cared for so much.”

“He didn’t seem to worry over it,” Freddie reminded her.

“Mr. Dangerfield’s a thoroughbred,” Cynthia commented. “No matter how
he felt about it he’d never show it to us.”

“You think not? No? Well, perhaps not,” the irrepressible Freddie
conceded graciously. “That’s one way of looking at it, certainly.”

Westenhanger took no part in the talk. His mind was busy with the task
of fitting this new evidence to the earlier events. If a thief had
taken the thing, why had the Talisman come back? The only possible
explanation was that the thief had taken fright. But why should he
take fright? So far as Westenhanger knew, nothing had come out which
made the solution of the problem any clearer, and only imminent
exposure could have forced the culprit to disgorge. Days had passed
since the loss of the Talisman. There had been plenty of time to get
it into a place of safe concealment. Why take the risk of replacing it
in the cabinet? There seemed to be no plausible answer to that
question.

But if it wasn’t a thief, then it must have been one of the
Dangerfields. One could leave old Rollo out of the business. He was
the last man to play a practical joke on his guests—especially a
practical joke which carried a tang as nasty as this affair did. Helga
was another possible agent, and an innocent agent if it did turn out
that she had a hand in the thing. Westenhanger began to incline
towards this solution. But then Helga, according to Douglas, was
right-handed, while the Talisman had been removed by someone who was
obviously left-handed. Perhaps one turned left-handed in one’s sleep.
But on recalling fragments of his dreams, Westenhanger had to admit
that he remembered himself as right-handed during his sleep. That
seemed to exclude Helga.

Then it flashed across his mind that Eric had been on the watch on
both nights, on the date of the Talisman’s vanishing and—last
night—when it returned. He had the place to himself on both occasions,
and could do as he chose. He was left-handed, too. But against this,
there was old Rollo’s statement, evidently made in good faith.

Eileen Cressage came into the room as he reached this point in his
cogitation. She sat down beside him, and he hastened to clear up an
item which had occurred to him.

“Had young Dangerfield sprained his ankle before he left here with you
that morning?”

“No. He was all right. He sprained it in London, somehow—getting out
of the way of a taxi, I think he said.”

“Funny thing to happen, surely?”

“Oh, he slipped on the kerb-stone, or something like that.”

Westenhanger’s half-formulated idea broke down. It was quite evident
that Eric had not got his injury in connection with the theft of the
Talisman. It was not a case of his having been half-caught in the
man-trap. Probably there was no man-trap at all. Rollo had denied its
existence, and one could take Rollo’s word for things. At any rate,
Westenhanger felt he had given every possibility a fair examination.

Mrs. Caistor Scorton came into the room, and Westenhanger glanced up
as she entered. Freddie broke out at once.

“Heard the latest, Mrs. Caistor Scorton? The Talisman’s come back!”

Westenhanger had his eyes on Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s face as Freddie
spoke; and he was amazed to see the effect of the words. Incredulity,
stupefaction, and fear, swept in succession over her features almost
in an instant. Then she regained command of herself, her thin lips
tightened, and she walked to her place without showing any further
sign of emotion. Only Westenhanger and Freddie seemed to have noticed
anything abnormal, so quickly had she recovered her self-control. The
other members of the party had not looked up as she came into the
room.

“Now we’ve got something,” Westenhanger commented inwardly. “That shot
took her absolutely off her guard. She knows something about the
business—anyone can see that. She was absolutely taken aback by
Freddie. She’ll want to know all about it, and then perhaps she’ll
have to do something. If we can only keep an eye on her through to-day
we may get to the bottom of the business at last.”

He dawdled through his breakfast, lending an ear to Freddie’s
repetition of the tale of the Talisman’s return. Mrs. Caistor Scorton
listened eagerly, he could see, and her breakfast remained almost
untouched. Westenhanger learned nothing further. When Eileen rose from
the table he accompanied her out of the room.

“You’re not doing anything important this morning, are you?” he
questioned in a low voice, as soon as the door closed behind them.

“Nothing in particular.”

“I want you to put yourself in my hands, then. Don’t ask questions,
please. I wish you to be an absolutely unbiassed witness, if anything
turns up. But keep your eyes open. I want you to pay special attention
to Mrs. Caistor Scorton to-day. It’s most important. Watch everything
she does closely, and we’ll compare notes afterwards.”

He led her to some seats near the main entrance, from which they had a
view of the corridor, and when they had ensconced themselves he began
to talk of indifferent matters, so as to give a semblance of
naturalness to their attitude. Very soon Mrs. Caistor Scorton,
accompanied by Freddie, came out of the breakfast room and passed
along the corridor towards the Corinthian’s Room.

“Quick! I want to overtake them,” ordered Westenhanger.

He and Eileen came up with the others just before reaching the end of
the passage. Westenhanger stepped forward and opened the door, so that
he could see Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s face as she entered, but he
learned very little. She seemed to have regained complete control of
herself.

All four crossed the chess-board and approached the cabinet. Freddie
had made no mistake. There on its velvet bed lay the Talisman,
protected by the bell of tinted glass which had been moved back to its
old position. Both doors of the cabinet were closed. Everything seemed
to have returned to its normal state.

Westenhanger, covertly scrutinising Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s face, saw a
flash of expression which took him by surprise. She seemed to be
witnessing some incredible happening—something beyond the bounds of
the possible. It almost suggested that she had disbelieved Freddie and
had been staggered by the actual sight of the Talisman. In an instant
the signs of bewilderment vanished and she again had herself under
control. Freddie had evidently noticed her amazement.

“Oh, it’s come home again, all right,” he said, triumphantly. “Old
Dangerfield was sound enough, after all. But how it got here is a
mystery, isn’t it, Mrs. Caistor Scorton?”

“I don’t understand it,” she admitted, dully, and as she spoke she
allowed her face to reveal the stupefaction which was evidently still
her dominant feeling.

“Well I’m very glad to see it again,” said Eileen. “It’s a relief to
find that it wasn’t stolen after all.”

Her glance made Mrs. Caistor Scorton wince. Neither of them had
forgotten Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s evidence against Eileen; and the
older woman evidently had little difficulty in reading the girl’s
feelings—she avoided any recognition of the underlying meaning in
Eileen’s last remark by turning to Freddie Stickney.

“I really hardly believed your story at first, Mr. Stickney; but one
can’t disbelieve one’s eyes. It seems incredible that it has come back
again. I feel almost inclined to doubt it even now.”

“We can soon settle that for you,” said Freddie. “I’ll take it out of
the case and you can handle it.”

Westenhanger broke in with a violence which surprised them all.

“Paws off, Freddie! Don’t lay a finger on it!”

He laid a rough hand on Freddie’s shoulder and drew him back from the
cabinet. Then, noticing their surprise, he went on in a milder tone.

“Mr. Dangerfield refused to allow any of us to touch it, the night he
showed it to us. He objects to it being handled. That’s enough for me.
We can’t go against his wishes behind his back. Understand?”

Freddie acquiesced sulkily. Mrs. Caistor Scorton relieved the strain
by looking at her watch and discovering that she had something to do.
As they left the room, Westenhanger lagged behind with Eileen for a
moment.

“Keep her in sight at any cost. I’m going up to my room for a moment.
I’ll join you again.”

When he returned, he found Eileen standing at the main entrance with
Freddie Stickney. Mrs. Caistor Scorton had disappeared.

“Shall we go now?” Westenhanger asked the girl. She nodded and they
shook off Freddie without much difficulty. He supposed they were going
to play tennis. Eileen led the way down into the gardens.

“She went off almost as soon as you went upstairs,” she told
Westenhanger, as they hurried along. “I stood at the door and watched
the road she took. We ought to make up on her in a moment or two if we
hurry.”

“I don’t want to make up on her. I want to follow her without showing
ourselves. She’s making for the Pool, if I’m not mistaken. That will
suit very well.”

He took a pair of prismatic glasses from his pocket and slung them
round his neck.

“We may want to watch from a distance. That’s why I had to go upstairs
for these.”

Eileen nodded.

“It’s the Talisman affair, isn’t it?” she asked. “I don’t quite see
what it all means, but you know something, obviously. Why are we
scurrying after her just now? The Talisman’s back again. I don’t see
what you expect to find out.”

“No questions, Eileen!” Westenhanger smiled. “If I’m right, you’ll see
it all in a few minutes. I don’t want to put any pre-conceived notions
into your mind.”

The girl studied his face in silence as they walked on. “Very well,”
she said. “But to tell you the truth I’m getting rather wearied of
Talisman mysteries. It seems to me I’ve had more than my share of
them.”

“This will be the last of them, perhaps, if we’re lucky.”

As he spoke they drew near the edge of the spinney which lay about the
Pool, and he made a gesture of caution to the girl. They could see
Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s figure crossing the open glade in front of
them.

“Now watch with all your eyes,” ordered Westenhanger, lifting his
glasses as he spoke.

Mrs. Caistor Scorton glanced round nervously once or twice; then,
apparently satisfied that there were no onlookers, she made her way to
a pollard willow which overhung the water. Still on the alert, she put
her hand far down into a hollow in the tree-trunk and drew out
something. It was too far off for Eileen to see more than the
movement, but Westenhanger whispered a running description of what his
glasses showed him.

“She’s taken something from the hole. . . . It’s very small. . . . I
can hardly make it out. Gold, apparently, by the glint. . . . Now
she’s putting her hand in again . . . Something bigger this time . . .
Yes . . . Your silver mirror. . . . It’s tarnished a bit, I’m
afraid. . . . Now for it. She’s trying again. . . .”

His tone showed a sharp disappointment.

“It looks like a silver-mounted paper-knife. . . . Yes, that’s
it. . . . Ah! I thought so. She’s got more in that hoard of
hers. . . . Something moderate-sized this time. . . . Confound it!
She’s turned away from us. I can’t see it. . . . Now she’s putting
them all back again. Quick, Eileen! Back along the path and get in
among the bushes. Hide! As quick as you can. Don’t make a sound.”

They managed to conceal themselves before Mrs. Caistor Scorton came
back into the belt of trees; and from behind the bushes they watched
her go past. Believing herself alone, she took no thought for her
expression; and on her face they read the utmost bewilderment, faintly
tinged with fear.

“She hasn’t spotted it,” Westenhanger thought to himself. “She ought
to have done. But I expect she’s completely jarred up. Well, this is
the end of her little game.”

As soon as Mrs. Caistor Scorton had disappeared Westenhanger came out
of his concealment and beckoned Eileen back to the path.

“Now that the coast’s clear,” he said, “we can have a look at the
magpie’s hoard. No questions yet!” he added, as she began to frame
one. “Facts, first of all; and you can draw your own conclusions.”

They went down to the tree; and Westenhanger soon found the hollow
which Mrs. Caistor Scorton had used as her cache. Putting his hand
into it, he drew out in succession the articles which he had seen
through his glasses.

“There’s Mrs. Brent’s wrist-watch,” he said, holding up his first
trophy. “No! Don’t touch it! I’ll lay it on the grass.”

Again he put his hand into the hollow. The second object gave him more
trouble, but at last he managed to humour it up the channel in the
tree trunk.

“Your mirror. What a pity it’s in such a state! No permanent damage
done, though. It’ll clean up all right. You can have that.”

He handed it to her and re-inserted his hand into the hole.

“The paper-knife. Don’t touch!”

“Why, that’s the one that used to be on the library table.”

“So it is,” said Westenhanger. “Now for the star piece of the
collection.”

He drew out the fourth object, and at the sight of it Eileen exclaimed
in astonishment:

“The Talisman! This is impossible, Conway! We left the Talisman safe
in the house not a quarter of an hour ago. She can’t have stolen it a
second time.”

She put out her hand for the armlet, but Westenhanger sharply drew it
back out of her reach.

“Paws off, Eileen, as I remarked to Freddie not so long ago. Under no
circumstances whatever are you to touch this thing until I give you
permission.”

“Let me see it, then. I won’t finger it.”

He held it out for her inspection and she examined it minutely.

“It _is_ the Talisman!”

She thought for a time, while Westenhanger watched her in silence.

“Oh, now I see it, I think. There are two Talismans? Or there’s a
Talisman and a replica. Mrs. Caistor Scorton stole this one. The other
one’s up at the house now. She must have got a shock when she heard
the Talisman had come back again. Is that it?”

Westenhanger’s reply seemed irrelevant.

“Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s not a very clever person like you.”

“Ah! now I see what it means. She stole this one; and when she saw the
other one in the case she was absolutely puzzled. She never thought of
a replica. And so she thought she’d come up against magic and spells.
Is that it? No wonder she was so staggered. I was completely puzzled
myself for a moment or two, and I expect her conscience—if she has
one—must have upset her a bit.”

“That’s how I explain it myself,” said Westenhanger. “But proceed.
What else do you make of it?”

The girl considered for a time; then at last she hit on a solution.

“Of course, it’s obvious when one puts two and two together. The
Dangerfields never kept the Talisman in the cabinet at all. They had a
replica for show and they kept the real Talisman in a safe place.”

“Yes,” agreed Westenhanger, “and that would account for the bell of
tinted glass. The tinge would conceal the fact that the stones in this
thing are paste. Even an expert couldn’t see anything wrong with the
water of them, if he looked through that dingy cover.”

“You think that’s why Mr. Dangerfield wouldn’t allow it to be taken
out of the cabinet?”

“Quite probably.”

“And that’s why he has been so easy-going over the whole thing? He
didn’t stand to lose much—only a piece of sham jewellery.”

“Obviously correct, I think. ‘It’s very clever of you to have noticed
it,’ as you once said to me.”

Eileen laughed.

“How you seem to treasure my sayings!”

She examined the armlet again.

“So this is the thing that brought me into all that trouble. And it’s
only a sham after all! By the way, didn’t Mr. Dangerfield say
something rather bitter about the original Talisman that night he told
us the legend? Something about it’s being a sham and a fraud from the
very start?”

“It wasn’t quite that. He said it was a memorial of lying and
cheating.”

“It seems an unpleasant sort of thing altogether. We’d better get it
off our hands, I think. What are you going to do with it now?”

“Take it up to the house again. But that reminds me, you’re still
under the law of ‘No Questions.’ Everything shall be cleared up to
your satisfaction in a very short time, if you’ll only wait.”

He wrapped the armlet carefully in his handkerchief and dropped it
into his pocket, taking care to touch it as little as he could. The
wrist-watch and paper-knife he put into his breast-pocket with less
precaution.

“Now for the next act!”

“Wait a moment,” pleaded Eileen. “Just one question. Why did Mr.
Dangerfield put out the real Talisman this morning?”

Westenhanger had his answer ready.

“What happened? The thief got a nasty jar. I expect that was what he
intended to do. He may have been on the look-out as well as
ourselves.”

They made their way up to the house. On the road they met Eric
Dangerfield walking slowly.

“Seen Mrs. Caistor Scorton?” asked Westenhanger, casually. “She was
just in front of us.”

“Yes,” answered Eric. “She’s gone up to the house.”

He walked on and they hurried forward towards Friocksheim.

“She’s gone to have another look at the cabinet, I expect,” said
Westenhanger. “Well, since she’s in the house, we may as well strike
while the iron’s hot. I’ll not keep you on tenterhooks much longer. As
a matter of fact, there’s no more mystery in the business.”



Chapter XII

At the door of Friocksheim, Westenhanger gave Eileen his directions.

“I must get rid of these, first of all,” he explained, tapping his
binoculars. “While I’m upstairs, will you go along to the Corinthian’s
Room and wait for me there? I shan’t be a minute.”

When he rejoined her, he had a brown paper parcel in his hand, and
from its shape she inferred that it contained the stolen articles.

“Now we can get to business, Eileen.”

With a gesture, he invited her to come with him to the cabinet of the
Talisman, and to her astonishment, he opened one of the doors and
withdrew the armlet from beneath the bell. Putting it aside with a
warning not to touch it, he took from his pocket the replica which
they had discovered in the hollow tree; and this he placed on the
velvet bed, arranging it as nearly as possible in the position
previously occupied by its duplicate. He then covered it with the bell
and closed the door of the cabinet.

“Now the trap’s baited,” he said, putting the second armlet in his
pocket with no particular precautions. “But we can’t risk the chance
of a fresh mouse nibbling the cheese before we’re ready. I’ll have to
stay here on guard. Your business will be to go off, now, and collect
all the people you can. It doesn’t much matter who they are, so long
as Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s one of them. Bring half a dozen at least.
Tell them anything you like to get them here. I’ll guarantee to keep
them, once they arrive.”

Eileen went off on her errand without venturing to put the question
which obviously was trembling on her lips. Westenhanger sat down to
await the arrival of his audience.

The first to appear were Mrs. Brent and Wraxall. Mrs. Brent was
plainly rather mistrustful.

“Is this another of these peculiarly unsatisfactory general meetings,
Mr. Westenhanger? I hardly expected to find you issuing invitations of
the kind.”

“Didn’t my messenger reassure you?” countered Westenhanger, with a
smile.

“Well, I hope my character’s not going to be dissected this time,” she
retorted tartly. “If I’m dragged into it in any form, I warn you I
shall simply go away.”

Westenhanger’s amusement grew more apparent.

“Don’t make too rash promises,” he advised. “I don’t think you’ll ask
for your money back at the door if you manage to sit through the first
act. This play gets brighter as it progresses.”

Wraxall looked at Westenhanger quizzically.

“What particular brand of drama do you specialise in? Is it tragedy?
Tragedy’s hardly my line. Nor yet is sob-stuff. I don’t seem to react
much to sob-stuff. Or are you a Happy-Ender? I’d rather you were. It’s
preferable. I don’t care about having an attack of catawampus as the
curtain flips down.”

“I’ll hear your criticisms afterwards,” Westenhanger said lightly.

Mrs. Caistor Scorton entered the room, but it was evident that she
would have stayed away had she dared to do so. It was a very different
Mrs. Caistor Scorton from the one who had so calmly given her damning
evidence against Eileen a few nights earlier. An air of bewilderment
was still on her face; and Westenhanger saw that she was puzzled by
his summons and uncertain as to its meaning. Quite obviously she was
afraid, and afraid of something which she could not define even to
herself. She walked across the room and seated herself with her back
to the light. Westenhanger avoided looking in her direction.

“Just as I thought,” he reflected. “She has no notion that she’s been
spotted; but the general complexity of the affair is giving her the
jumps. She’ll brazen it out if she can, when it comes to the pinch.
Lucky I was careful.”

Rollo Dangerfield followed close on Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s heels. As
he entered, he shot a glance at Westenhanger from under his white
eyebrows, a glance in which doubt seemed to mingle with a certain
hostility.

“He doesn’t like being dragged into this affair,” was Westenhanger’s
interpretation. “I suppose it jars on his notions about the code of a
host. I can’t help his troubles, though. He’s got to go through it
with the rest. We must get rid of that woman to-day, and he ought to
be put on his guard in case he ever thinks of bringing her down to
Friocksheim again.”

Freddie Stickney lounged into the room a few minutes later. At the
sight of the assembly, his eyebrows rose momentarily and he glanced
inquisitively from one to another as though he hoped to discover from
the faces the secret of the meeting. Westenhanger curtly invited him
to sit down. He augured little good from Freddie’s presence, and was
inclined to blame Eileen for having dragged the creature into the
affair at all. But then, remembering that she probably wanted Freddie
to see the final clearing-up of the affair, so as to leave him no
chance for tittle-tattle, Westenhanger had to admit to himself that
she was right in her choice.

Almost at once, Eileen and Cynthia came through the door together.
Cynthia looked round the room in some surprise. Eileen had evidently
brought her there without explanation.

“Who’s in the chair this time?” she inquired languidly, when she had
inspected the company. “You, Mr. Westenhanger? Well, that’s a relief!”

She and Eileen chose seats near Mrs. Brent. The gathering now seemed
complete, and Westenhanger was about to begin, when the door opened
again. Eric Dangerfield came into the room. It was evident that he had
not been summoned like the others, and that he had no idea of what was
afoot. He seemed wrapped in a brown study, for when he raised his head
and caught sight of the company, he was obviously surprised. He made
no comment, however; but Westenhanger saw him glance swiftly round the
group until he picked out his uncle. Eric’s face was glum, and the
message which his eyes telegraphed was evidently unsatisfactory,
whatever its purport. Old Rollo’s expression showed that the silent
communication had taken him completely aback. Incredulity, followed by
something like dismay, flashed for an instant across his features
before being effaced by the return of the old man’s normal expression
of aloofness. Westenhanger was at a loss how to interpret the
incident. Eric, having delivered his message to his uncle, looked
again at the company and then seated himself in the nearest vacant
chair. He seemed to be brooding over some problem which puzzled him,
and he appeared to pay little attention to Westenhanger’s opening
words.

“I think we’re all rather _blasé_ of these meetings, by now,”
Westenhanger began. “It’ll be a relief to you to know that this one is
positively the last. Most of us have had evidence of sorts dragged out
of us on one pretence or another. It seems a pity to be out of the
fashion, so I’ll give you mine. And that will finish the business.”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton shifted slightly in her chair; but Westenhanger
could make nothing of her face. If anything, she seemed more
bewildered than ever.

“As you know,” Westenhanger continued, “I was away from Friocksheim on
the night of the Talisman’s disappearance. I’ve nothing fresh to say
about that. Not to drag things out, I have suspicions”—he dragged out
his words slowly—“which amount to . . . almost . . . a certainty . . .
with regard to the disappearance of the Talisman.”

To avoid glancing at any particular person, he fixed his eyes on the
tapestry of Diana’s hunting, as though that chase engrossed his whole
visual attention for the moment.

“Somebody suggested that this business has been a mere practical
joke,” he continued. “If so, then this is the last chance for the
perpetrator of it to own up. Anybody volunteer?”

Nobody accepted his offer. At last Freddie Stickney broke the silence.

“Anyone can see it’s a practical joke. There’s the Talisman staring
you in the face! It’s not been stolen at all.”

“Think so, Freddie? Perhaps you’re right. But some other things have
gone amissing: Miss Cressage’s mirror, Mrs. Brent’s wrist-watch,
and”—he glanced at Eric for confirmation—“a silver-mounted paper-knife
from the library table.”

Eric nodded his confirmation of this. He was paying more attention to
Westenhanger now.

“There’s no question of a practical joke in these cases, for the
articles have not been returned.”

“That doesn’t prove anything about the Talisman,” Freddie objected
with an air of acuteness. “It was returned; they weren’t. Obviously
the cases are different.”

“If you insist on their reappearance,” answered Westenhanger, “it’s
easy enough to gratify you.”

He unwrapped his paper parcel and took out its contents one by one.

“Your wrist-watch, Mrs. Brent? No, don’t touch it, if you please. And
Miss Cressage’s mirror. And the paper-knife with the silver handle,
which most of us know well enough.”

Eileen was surprised to find that he had not included the Talisman in
the series.

As he drew out article after article, Westenhanger had shot a sidelong
glance at Mrs. Caistor Scorton. With the appearance of the stolen
goods, her figure had grown rigid, and her face now showed fear as its
dominant note. She waited breathlessly for Westenhanger’s next move.

“These things,” Westenhanger went on, “I recovered this morning from
the place where they had been hidden.”

His eyes happened to light on Eric’s face as he spoke, and he noticed
an expression flit across it as though this evidence had cleared up
something. But immediately perplexity reappeared in Eric’s features. A
fresh point seemed to have arisen to puzzle him.

Westenhanger refrained from dragging out the agony.

“The thief was Mrs. Caistor Scorton,” he said, bluntly.

At the words, Mrs. Caistor Scorton rose from her chair.

“Mr. Westenhanger is very free with his insinuations,” she commented.
“So far, he has produced nothing to support that lie.”

Westenhanger turned on her.

“These things were stolen from various places in the house. This
morning, Miss Cressage and I watched you take them from the hollow
tree down by the Pool. I think that’s clear enough.”

“Then it’s simply your evidence against mine. Miss Cressage doesn’t
count, I’m afraid. She was under suspicion herself not so long ago.”

Westenhanger went white with anger.

“Miss Cressage cleared herself of any charge that you brought against
her. But you’re mistaken if you think the thing rests solely on that
evidence. The thief was left-handed; so are you.”

“So are other people.”

Westenhanger admitted this with a curt nod. He had tried to drive her
into an acknowledgment without using the Talisman; but there seemed to
be no way out of it.

“It’s no use bluffing, Mrs. Scorton. Your finger-prints are on the
Talisman.”

Rollo Dangerfield interrupted him sharply.

“You are mistaken there, Mr. Westenhanger.”

Westenhanger stepped over to Rollo’s side and lowered his voice so
that only the old man could hear.

“Take my word for it. I’m afraid I’ve stumbled on the Dangerfield
Secret, and I’d rather say nothing to put other people on the track.”

Rollo could take a blow without wincing. Apart from the dismay in his
eyes, he showed nothing to mark that he had been touched on his most
sensitive spot.

“Very well, Mr. Westenhanger. Do as you please. And thanks for your
restraint.”

He raised his voice and spoke to the company at large.

“I’m sorry that I inadvertently threw doubt on Mr. Westenhanger’s
statement. He knows best.”

Westenhanger pressed his point.

“Do you deny that your finger-prints are there?”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton had seized on Rollo’s intervention as a possible
way opening to safety; but with his recantation she seemed to lose
heart completely.

“Well, I took it, then,” she admitted. “I couldn’t help it. I’m a
kleptomaniac. I can’t help taking glittering things like these. I’m
not a thief. I don’t steal for money. I don’t need money. It’s simply
I can’t help taking some things. They fascinate me. I simply have to
take them. I’ve fought against it, but it’s no good.”

“So I thought,” said Westenhanger. “But that hardly excuses the way in
which you tried to throw suspicion on other people. If you hadn’t done
that, it might have been possible to hush this up. But you made it
impossible to stop short of complete exposure. I gave you every
chance.”

“Need we go any further?” interposed old Rollo. “I think the matter is
now quite clear to all of us; and I’m quite sure none of us wish it to
go any further. The main thing is that suspicion has been cleared
away.”

Westenhanger agreed.

“You’ve got off lightly, Mrs. Scorton. And you’ve Mr. Dangerfield to
thank for it. If the police had been called in . . .”

Mrs. Caistor Scorton made no response. Nothing which she could have
said would have lessened her defeat or gained her any sympathy.
Westenhanger had put his finger on the main point of her offence when
he spoke of her attempt to throw the blame on other shoulders:
kleptomania might be forgiven as a morbid effect, but her effort to
shield herself at Eileen’s expense had put her in an even worse light.
Without a look at anyone, she crossed the room, fumbled with the
door-handle for an instant before Westenhanger could come to her
assistance, and then went out.

With her departure, a sudden slackening of the tension made itself
felt. Everyone seemed anxious to minimise the whole matter as far as
possible. The third uncomfortable scene of the week was at last safely
behind them, and obviously, as Westenhanger had predicted, it would be
the last of the series. Friocksheim could get back to normal once more
now that the cloud of suspicion had settled finally on the right
person. In a few minutes Westenhanger’s audience had filtered from the
room, leaving him alone with Eric and old Rollo.

As soon as the last outsider had gone, Westenhanger put his hand in
his pocket.

“Here’s the real Talisman,” he said, handing it over to the old man.
“Before staging that last affair I exchanged it for the replica which
Mrs. Caistor Scorton took, so that I could prove the thing by means of
her finger-prints if necessary, and yet keep the rest of them from
knowing that you were using a duplicate. I didn’t wish to let
outsiders into a secret which I’d stumbled upon myself by accident.”

“Very thoughtful of you,” Rollo said warmly. “Most people would have
been less careful of our feelings, I’m afraid.”

Westenhanger remembered something.

“Of course Miss Cressage knows the state of affairs as well as I do;
but you can trust her to keep other people’s secrets. She’s proved
that already at considerable cost.”

“Oh, one could trust Miss Cressage completely, I know.”

Westenhanger took a chair, as though to show that he had more to say.
Rollo Dangerfield, after placing the Talisman in the little safe in
the wall, sat down in his turn. Eric took up his position in front of
the fire-place.

“I’m not quite clear about the whole of this business,” said
Westenhanger to his host. “Perhaps, since I’ve blundered so far into
it—unintentionally—you won’t mind settling one or two points for me.”

Again he noted with surprise that an expression of dismay seemed to
flicker for an instant in Rollo’s face. “Now what on earth is he jumpy
about, at this stage in the affair?” Westenhanger asked himself; but
he could find no immediate answer to the question.

Rollo merely nodded in response to his guest’s remark. He evidently
intended to answer or not as suited him best.

“What has puzzled me, for one thing,” Westenhanger continued, “is why
you have been using a replica at all. Why not put the Talisman in a
place of safety and be done with it?”

“Did you never think of a stalking-horse?” Rollo asked. “If we locked
up the Talisman, then anyone who wished to steal it would concentrate
his efforts on the thing itself, and we should have to take
precautions. As it is—you’ve seen the process in operation
yourself—the thief thinks it is all plain sailing. He concentrates on
the sham Talisman and never thinks of anything else. If he’s
successful—it matters very little to us. All he gets is some gilded
lead and a few bits of cheap paste.”

“I hadn’t thought of that,” Westenhanger admitted. “It’s certainly a
sound piece of tactics. But doesn’t the secret leak out if the thing
happens to be stolen?”

“No,” explained Rollo. “Suppose a thief takes the replica—it’s been
stolen oftener than we say in public—what does he do? He can’t publish
his information. Nobody learns anything about it.”

“That’s true, of course, when one thinks of it,” Westenhanger
admitted, dismissing the matter. “Now there’s another point that
puzzled me. Why did you suddenly put the Talisman back into the
cabinet last night?”

This time it was Eric who took the matter up.

“Look at the position from our point of view, Westenhanger. The thing
was stolen in the small hours, that morning. I was round the house in
the earlier part of the night, watching to see that Helga came to no
harm. By the way, Douglas saw me writing a note to Morchard, enclosing
a cheque for my losses; and I think Wraxall must have seen me leaving
it in the hall for Morchard to get in the morning.”

“You seem to know a lot of details,” commented Westenhanger.

“Freddie Stickney has his uses,” Eric explained. “He gave my uncle a
full and embroidered account of all that went on at that inquiry of
his. Well, we come to the next morning. Of course my uncle and I went
straight to the cabinet; and at once I knew the thing had been stolen
by a left-handed person. It was obvious to me, because I’m left-handed
myself, as you know.”

He smiled ironically.

“You and Douglas were very ingenious, Westenhanger; but as my own mind
was running on parallel lines, I hadn’t much trouble in seeing what
you were after with your coin-counting and all the rest of it.”

Westenhanger felt the home-thrust; but Eric seemed to attach no
importance to the matter.

“I had to go up to town that morning to pay in a cheque to meet the
one I’d given to Morchard, before he could present it. Same case as
Miss Cressage, in fact. So we decided to postpone investigation till I
got back in the afternoon. As you know, I got scuppered in
town—twisted my ankle—and couldn’t get back for a day or two. My uncle
didn’t make much of a success at the sleuth business. He was quite
content to wait till I turned up again and picked out the missing
left-hander. You see, we had a pull over you people in the fact that
I’m left-handed myself, and so I know the finer points in which a
left-hander differs from the normal. We had Mrs. Caistor Scorton
picked out in a very short time after I came home again—a much shorter
time than you took over the business, naturally, owing to our handicap
of special knowledge.”

He sat down and began to fill his pipe.

“Meanwhile, of course,” he went on, “Freddie had muddled things up no
end by his pranks. But Mrs. Brent had cleared Miss Cressage the night
I came home again, so that matter didn’t affect us. My uncle had been
carrying on his part of the show in my absence—producing an
atmosphere, if you see what I mean. All that stuff about the Talisman
always coming back—of course, it always does come back!—and so forth.
That was all meant for Mrs. Caistor Scorton’s benefit. We wanted to
get her into a state of uncertainty—general jumps, in fact, semi-eerie
atmosphere, you know, no saying what’s going to happen, and so forth.
My uncle managed that side of it, with special attention to her as
soon as I’d picked her out.”

It was evident that old Rollo was half-ashamed of the part he had
played. He said nothing, however, and Eric went on.

“Once we were sure of our effect, we brought the Talisman home again.”

He nodded in the direction of the cabinet.

“We took care that Freddie knew about it first thing. He passed it on
to Mrs. Caistor Scorton. She’s not a brainy person, really; and she
fell right into the trap we had laid for her. Given her brand of mind,
we counted that she would go straight off to where she had hidden the
replica she had stolen; and we had only to keep an eye on her. It
worked out quite according to plan. She lost her head when she saw the
thing over there. She must have thought the world was upside-down or
something. So off she scuttled at once to see what had become of her
own Talisman. Mixed up with the general muddle in her mind there was
probably the fear that we had found the thing and got it back. So away
she went, to make sure. That really seems to support the kleptomania
notion. No thief with any constructive capacity would have dreamed of
going to his cache in these circumstances. As soon as she left the
house I was on the watch with a telescope from my rooms in the tower
up above here. You can see every part of the place from there—bar the
belt of trees round the pool. You can see the Pool itself, and I
watched her go down there and examine her hiding-place. As soon as she
put the things back again I went off as quick as I could limp to
secure them.”

“I remember we met you on the road.”

“Yes. I passed you and went right on to the willow. You can guess how
I felt when I put my hand into the hole and found nothing there. I
hadn’t seen you and Miss Cressage through the telescope, you know; you
must have been hidden in the belt of trees when I was on the watch;
and you only came out after I had come down from my post.”

“So that’s why you were looking puzzled when you came in here?”

“Well, how would you have felt? It seemed a bit weird to find the
things gone, within a minute or two of my seeing them put back into
the hole.”

Westenhanger smiled.

“I’m glad you haven’t had all the laughs on your side.”

“I came in here,” Eric continued, “just to see if the cabinet was all
right; and of course I plunged into the middle of your At Home. You
certainly took a nasty bit of work off our hands by your intervention.
Well, I think that’s all. Virtue rewarded, and all that—just like a
fairy tale, eh?”

“It’s been a thoroughly unpleasant business,” old Rollo spoke at last.
“There’s only one thing in it that gives me any satisfaction. It was
our good fortune that the only people who fathomed the secret of the
replica are you, Mr. Westenhanger, and Miss Cressage. We know that the
matter is safe in your keeping.”

“Mrs. Caistor Scorton must have some suspicions, surely?” Westenhanger
suggested.

“Suspicions, yes,” admitted the old man, grimly. “But I think she’s
hardly likely to mention the Talisman to anyone in future. She won’t
betray much.”

“So that’s why you wouldn’t call in the police?” demanded
Westenhanger. “I must confess that puzzled me badly. I began to
believe you really thought yourself that the Talisman would come back
of its own accord.”

Rollo avoided answering the question.

“You may tell Miss Cressage exactly what you think fit about all
this,” he said. “Perhaps she ought to know the whole facts. We can
trust her implicitly. We all know that.”

“Well, Friocksheim will be a bit more comfortable to live in, now, or
I’m mistaken,” Eric said hopefully as they left the room. “We’ll be
three short at dinner to-night, no doubt; but I expect we’ll bear up
under the loss.”

“Three?” queried Westenhanger.

“Mrs. Scorton’s hardly likely to stay. Then Morchard was only down
here trying to persuade us to sell him Friocksheim. Nothing doing, of
course; we’d as soon think of parting with the Talisman itself. After
what’s happened, we shan’t press him to prolong his visit. He’s not a
friend of ours, it was merely a matter of business.”

“I wondered how he came to be here at all,” confessed Westenhanger.
“He seemed a bit out of his element. And who’s the third?”

“Freddie. I have an idea that my uncle will politely but firmly hasten
his departure. He’s stirred up enough trouble to last us for a while,
and we’ll be happier without him.”

As it turned out, Eric was accurate in his forecasts. Mrs. Caistor
Scorton took her departure in the afternoon, without meeting anyone,
and by the same train went Morchard and Freddie Stickney.

“Must have been an interesting scene at the station,” speculated
Douglas Fairmile as he joined Wraxall and Westenhanger in the evening,
after most of the others had gone to bed. “The good lady would hustle
into her compartment first of all. Seat facing the engine, no doubt.
In her state of mind it would be better to look forward than to look
back. Bury the past! Then friend Morchard would hop into a smoker. And
Freddie would be left on the platform, wondering which of them he’d
most like to worry with his company up to town. He’s not the lad to
feel himself _de trop_ anywhere.”

“Let’s forget ’em,” suggested Westenhanger. “They gave us enough
trouble between them. I can feel the air of the place different, since
they’ve gone.”

“So can I,” confirmed the American. “It’s been a very awkward week for
all of us; and it’s been specially awkward for me, if I may say so. I
was the outsider in the party. Your English hospitality’s perfect, and
you couldn’t have done more to make me feel at home. But all the same,
I was the one visitor that none of you knew personally before we met
here. And I was the only one, bar the Dangerfields, who had a direct
interest in the Talisman. I wanted the thing badly. The Dangerfields
knew that quite well; I’d even made an offer for it, the very night it
was stolen. Old Mr. Dangerfield put that offer aside. Quite polite, of
course; but you know that uninterested way he has, as if he were
thinking of something else all the time. No good. But I’d showed him
how keen I was on the thing.”

He put down his cigar.

“And that very night, the thing disappeared! Collectors have the name
of being an unscrupulous gang. I might have lifted it easily enough.
And next day I got a notion he suspected me. It was very awkward. It
was most awkward. And we’ve got you to thank, Westenhanger, for
getting us out of it. I’m grateful. I’m very thankful to get my
character cleared.”

“But surely you didn’t expect to buy the Talisman?” said Douglas. “The
Dangerfields would never part with the thing.”

“If you’re ever hard up, Fairmile, you’ll do a lot of things you
wouldn’t think of in your present state. I reckoned it out this way.
The Talisman is the big Dangerfield asset. So long as they have it,
they’re all right. Their credit’s good. But money’s more use to them
than jewels just now. I have ways of finding out things like that, and
I banked on it. My offer would have been a better spec. for them than
the Talisman itself, from the credit point of view. I offered far more
than the thing’s worth in the open market—twenty-five per cent. more.
But it seems this family pride comes in. They won’t part with the
thing. I was struck by that. I haven’t met that so strong before.”

“Perhaps your information’s wrong about their finances. One would need
to be in the last ditch before one would think of selling a thing like
the Talisman. And I doubt if the Dangerfields are anywhere near the
last ditch.”

“That’s where you’re mistaken, Westenhanger. That’s what made me so
sure I was going to get the thing. They’re right in that ditch now.”



Chapter XIII

Conway Westenhanger had never pretended, even to himself, that he had
a natural gift for detective work. He had quite frankly recognised
that only good luck could bring him to success in his search for the
taker of the Talisman; and a retrospect over the events of the week
served merely to confirm the idea. None the less, the history of the
case caused him to feel a touch of chagrin. While he had been
following out erroneous inductions, the two Dangerfields had gone
straight to the mark; and if he had actually beaten them by a short
head in the end, it was by good luck and nothing else. In fact, he had
profited by their manœuvres in the matter of the Talisman’s return.
Without that incident, he would have been unable to discover anything
at all.

Now, so far as he was concerned, the episode seemed to have reached
its end, but when he thought over the whole affair, one point still
remained a mystery to him. Why had old Rollo shown that touch of
dismay at a reference to the Dangerfield Secret? The thing had been
only momentary, but it had been unmistakable, and Westenhanger had
seen it twice over within a very short period. The first time, he
recalled, was when he had hinted to Rollo that he had stumbled on the
Secret; the second occasion was when he had shown signs of asking
questions which, possibly, might touch the same subject.

“Is this Secret of theirs merely the use of the replica as a
stalking-horse, to mask the real Talisman?” Westenhanger asked
himself.

But a moment’s reflection showed him that this explanation would not
cover the facts.

“No, it isn’t that. Old Rollo knew I’d tumbled to their use of the
replica. That was what startled him the first time. But it was some
time after that, when I began asking questions to clear the affair up,
that he got really worried. He couldn’t have been troubled about his
stalking-horse then, because obviously I knew all about it already.
But he was quite evidently afraid I was getting near something. Ergo,
the replica affair isn’t the real Dangerfield Secret at all. There’s
something further, behind all this. And it must be something pretty
big, too; for Rollo Dangerfield isn’t a person one could easily jar
off the rails.”

Westenhanger hated to be puzzled. A problem worried him, until he
could get at its solution. And this affair at Friocksheim had given
him more anxiety than he had expected, when he had first gone
light-heartedly to Freddie Stickney’s inquiry. Then, he had been in a
completely detached position, the one person who could not come under
suspicion. But the outcome of Freddie’s operations had been to drag
Westenhanger into the business on behalf of Eileen Cressage; and from
that he had gone further in his attempt to clear up the whole affair
and fix the blame on the right shoulders. And now, something seemed to
lead him another step on the road; a fresh mystery confronted him,
obscure and tantalising by its very vagueness.

With an effort he put it to the back of his mind.

“It’s no affair of mine,” he repeated to himself again and again.

But even that truism failed to exorcise his demon. Ever and again the
Dangerfield Secret crept up out of his mental background and insisted
on forcing itself upon his conscious thoughts, and with each
appearance it took on a slightly different and more definite form. He
gathered no fresh data, but things which he knew already began to fit
themselves together in his mind, until at last, in a flash of
illumination, he seemed to see the whole puzzle completed.

“So _that’s_ the Dangerfield Secret!”

Then, as the fuller implications of the thing forced themselves upon
him:

“No wonder they were afraid. Poor devils!”

He ran over the evidence once more, and found himself forced to
believe that he had reached a correct solution. Everything pointed in
the same direction. Not only so, but other things now fitted
themselves into the scheme, things which he had noticed casually, and
had not hitherto thought of, connecting together. And then a further
conjecture shot across his mind, completing the whole history of the
Dangerfield Secret.

“That’s it, almost certainly,” he reflected. “They’ve made nothing of
it themselves, though they’re cute enough. But I wonder . . .”

He paused, in doubt for a moment.

“It’s a very long shot; but a fresh mind often sees a thing that other
people overlook. Perhaps one might lend them a hand. Luck’s been with
me, so far. Let’s press it while it lasts. If it’s a wash-out there’s
no harm done.”

His first step was to seek out Rollo Dangerfield.

“Might I have another look at that peculiar leather thing you showed
us one night—the thing your grandfather left?”

Rollo looked at him suspiciously, but complied without any marked
reluctance. They went together to the Corinthian’s Room where Rollo
opened the safe.

“I’d like to have a glance at the chess-board problem, too,” said
Westenhanger, as though struck by an after-thought. “I used to be
rather keen on these things, and I’d like to see if I could solve that
one.”

The old man put his hand into the safe and withdrew the two objects.
Westenhanger took them.

“I’ll copy this, if you don’t mind, and then you can put them back
into safety. I’d rather not be responsible for them longer than’s
necessary.”

He stepped over into the library, followed by Rollo, and copied down
the wording of the document and the position of the chess-pieces under
the old man’s supervision. Then he took up the leather disc and
inspected it closely.

“I thought, perhaps, that it might have been a leather washer for some
mechanical contrivance,” he said at last, handing the shrivelled
object back to its owner. “But now that I’ve seen it again, I don’t
believe it can have been that, after all. It’s certainly been used for
some purpose or other, for the surface isn’t smooth on either side.
Shoemaker’s leather sheets always have one side semi-polished, if I’m
not mistaken.”

“What made you think of a washer?” inquired Rollo, more from
politeness than from interest, it seemed.

“You mentioned that your grandfather took some interest in mechanics—a
bit of an inventor, I gathered. So I thought possibly it might have
some connection with machinery. But when one looks at it, I doubt if
that’s a possible explanation. It might be the washer of a
pump-piston, of course, but I shouldn’t think so. The hole in the
centre’s only big enough to take the twine. A piston-washer would have
a bigger hole in it. No, it beats me.”

Rollo took the thing back without comment. Westenhanger passed him the
paper also; and old Dangerfield replaced them in the safe. He was
turning to leave the room when Westenhanger spoke again.

“By the way, the Dangerfield Secret’s only three generations old,
isn’t it, Mr. Dangerfield?”

By the startled expression on Rollo’s face, Westenhanger saw that he
had hit the mark. The old man was plainly astounded by the question.
It was a few moments before he replied.

“You’re somewhere near it,” he admitted, looking distrustfully at the
engineer. “How did you come to hit on that particular period?”

“Oh, just a guess,” said Westenhanger, lightly.

Rollo seemed in doubt as to what he should say next. Then evidently he
felt it best to keep off a subject which he seemed to think a
dangerous one.

“If you find the key-move of that chess-problem,” he said, changing
the topic with obvious intention, “you might make a note of it and
tell me what it is. We may as well enter it up in the archives.”

He smiled with little apparent amusement and left Westenhanger to his
self-imposed task. The engineer plunged at once into the study of the
chess-position. Two minutes’ scrutiny satisfied him on one point.

“That’s no normal chess problem,” he said to himself. “If it’s White
to play, he can checkmate Black by simply taking that pawn with his
bishop. The old Corinthian evidently was an expert, from what old
Dangerfield told us; and no expert would trouble to put down a thing
like this on paper. And, by the same reasoning, Rollo’s suggestion’s
rubbish, too. There could be no conceivable dispute over a position of
this sort. The merest beginner would see at a glance that Black has
lost the game. The Corinthian would never have troubled to jot this
down, if that was all the matter at stake.”

He looked at the diagram disgustedly.

“Of course, if one were full up to the back-teeth with port, it might
look less obvious than it does. I shan’t try the experiment, though.
It’s quite on the cards that he was completely dazed and didn’t see
the mate in one move. Let’s leave it at that just now, and try the
rest of the thing.”

He transferred his attention to the inscription above the diagram.

“_Nox nocti indicat scientiam._ Night unto night sheweth knowledge,
it’s translated in the Bible, I remember. That’s mysterious enough. I
wonder why he chose the Latin instead of the English version. Perhaps
he read the Vulgate and liked the sound of the Latin. Now what about
these two texts: Matthew Sixth and Twenty-first; Luke Twelfth and
Thirty-fourth. There ought to be a Bible somewhere on the shelves.”

He hunted for a time and at last discovered the volume.

“Let’s see. ‘_For where thy treasure is, there will thy heart be
also._’ And the other one: ‘_For where your treasure is, there will
your heart be also._’”

He pondered over the texts for a time, but no enlightenment came to
him.

“All the same,” he assured himself at last, “these two texts seem more
to the point than the rest of the stuff. I can’t help feeling I’m on
the right track. Suppose we put it all together and see if there’s any
traceable connection between the three links.”

He began at the top of the paper.

“_Nox_. Darkness. Black. Does that mean, by any chance, that it’s
Black’s turn to play and not White’s?”

He mentally tried over the possible moves; but they led to nothing.

“No good. A bit far-fetched, in any case. But why use Latin in one
text and English for the rest; for the text-references are obviously
to the English Bible and not to the Vulgate—Luke isn’t Latin. There
might be something there, if one could only see it.”

He stared at the paper as though hoping that some key-word would flash
up from the inscriptions.

“The fresh eye doesn’t seem to see much,” he confessed ruefully, after
a time. “I make neither head nor tail of it. And yet I’m dead certain
that the thing’s there, if one could only get a glimpse of it. What’s
wanted is someone I could talk it over with—one often gets a flash
that way.”

A recollection of Rollo’s words passed through his mind: “You may tell
Miss Cressage what you think fit. We can trust her.”

Westenhanger hesitated.

“It’s straining the meaning a bit further than old Dangerfield meant,
perhaps. But the principle’s the main thing. She wouldn’t let anything
slip out. Besides, they’ve never taken me into their confidence. I’m
not giving away anything they’ve told me. So why not?”

He folded up his paper, put it into his pocket, and left the room. It
took him some time to discover Eileen, but at last he found her at the
tennis-courts, watching Douglas and Cynthia playing a single.

On the departure of the three pariahs, the Friocksheim atmosphere had
cleared, as the weather changes after the passing of thunder. Sudden
relaxation of the long-drawn-out strain of suspicion produced a
reaction among the remaining company; and the influence of Douglas
Fairmile soon supplanted the morbid inquisitiveness of Freddie
Stickney. Tacitly it was resolved to obliterate the whole incident
from memory, and to make the house-party a success.

In this new medium Eileen Cressage had undergone an almost visible
change. Relieved from the irritation of Freddie’s suspicions and freed
from the annoyance of Morchard’s presence, she had recovered an
enjoyment of life and high spirits which marked how much she had been
repressed under the weight of mistrust. Westenhanger had been
surprised to find in her almost a new character.

“Care to walk down to the sea?” he asked, as he came up to where she
was sitting.

She sprang up at once and joined him.

“Let’s go to the headland again,” she suggested, as they passed
through the gardens. “I’d rather like to sit there for a while.”

“The _Kestrel’s_ still in the bay,” Westenhanger reminded her. “You
won’t have to sweep the horizon for her smoke this time, thank
goodness.”

“No. That’s over. And I suppose you won’t be worried over puzzles
about whether I’m right or left-handed this time.”

Westenhanger took up the challenge, much to her surprise.

“Don’t be too sure of that! I’ve got another problem on hand now. Care
to help?”

Eileen’s face clouded suddenly.

“Not more suspicion, surely? And I thought we’d got rid of all that!
Friocksheim’s been lovely, since we put all that affair behind us.
You’re not raking it up again, are you?”

Westenhanger reassured her with a smile.

“No. That’s the last thing I’d want to do. You know that quite well.
This is a philanthropic effort, if it’s anything.”

“Oh, well, if it’s merely a case of helping someone, I’ll be delighted
to do anything.”

They had reached the headland, and he took a seat by her side before
saying more.

“It’s just a thing that’s puzzling me,” he explained. “You remember
Mr. Dangerfield showed us those relics of the old Corinthian that
night? I’ve had another look at them, and I feel sure there’s
something behind the business. I’d like to talk it over with you, just
to see what you make of it. Of course, we say nothing to anyone else
about it—that’s understood?”

Eileen nodded agreement.

“Go ahead then, Conway. But I shan’t be much help, I know.”

Westenhanger pulled out his copy of the Corinthian’s document.

“This is the thing. I feel sure that it’s the key to something or
other. The Dangerfields evidently have made nothing of it, so I
thought I’d try my hand—or our hands—at it.”

Eileen took the paper from him and scanned it for a moment.

“You’ve come to the wrong girl. I don’t know Latin and I don’t play
chess. What help could I be?”

“Well, ask any questions you like. Perhaps they’ll suggest something.
That’s the way you can help.”

Eileen looked again at the sheet in her hand.

“What does this Latin sentence mean, first of all? I’ve forgotten what
Mr. Dangerfield told us.”

“_Nox nocti indicat scientiam_? ‘One night gives a tip to another
night’ would be a colloquial translation of it.”

The girl looked puzzled.

“But I thought it came from the Bible. I never heard knights mentioned
in the Bible. Are you sure you’re right?”

It was Westenhanger’s turn to look blank.

“Your education’s been neglected. Didn’t it rain for forty days and
forty nights about the time of the Deluge?”

Eileen’s face cleared.

“Oh, I see what you mean. I thought you meant K-N-I-G-H-T when you
said that one gave the other a tip.”

Westenhanger’s excitement was obvious.

“I knew you’d throw some light on the thing! That makes it clear
enough. But who’d have thought of a pun?”

“What do you mean?”

“Look here, Eileen. ‘Night unto night sheweth knowledge.’ That’s how
it reads in English. These horse-headed pieces on the chess-board are
knights—with a K. If the old Corinthian had put his text into English,
it would have been fairly obvious: ‘Night unto night’ . . . and two
knights on the board. So he used the Latin and concealed the thing. It
could only be understood if one translated into English and took the
sound of the words as a guide instead of the spelling.”

“I think I see. So that really means that one of these knights on the
chess-board has something to tell the other one? What is it he can
tell? You play chess; I don’t.”

Westenhanger shook his head.

“It’s not so easy as all that, Eileen. Chess doesn’t help much here,
so far as I can see. But suppose we go up to the house and get a board
and the pieces. It’ll be easier to see then, perhaps. If anyone comes
across us, I’m teaching you chess, remember. We don’t want this talked
about.”

“Very good.” She rose to her feet. “Let’s go now.”

They went up to the house and Westenhanger unearthed a chess-board and
men in the library. Soon he had set up a duplicate of the diagram with
the pieces, and he and Eileen bent their heads over it.

“Even if you don’t know chess, at least you know what a knight’s move
is: two squares on and then one to the right or left. You can make the
move in any direction you please. Like this, or this.”

He illustrated it on the board.

“Yes, I remember that. It comes into puzzles and things of that sort.”

Westenhanger thought for a short time without saying anything.

“One knight gives a tip to the other,” he mused at last. “There’s only
one tip worth having in chess: and that’s how to checkmate your
opponent.”

He looked over the board once or twice.

“That’s it!” he exclaimed. “One of these knights can mate the black
king without the help of any other piece if he moves this way.
One—two—three—four moves!”

He moved the white knight from the knight’s square successively to the
squares number 1, 2, 3, and 4 in the diagram.

[Illustration: The same chess-board diagram, this time with four
squared numbered to show the moves that one of the White knights can
make to put the Black king in checkmate.]

“That gives checkmate. Now let’s try the other knight.”

He tried a move or two.

“This second knight can’t get a mate in four moves by any chance. That
looks all right, doesn’t it?”

“You mean that the one knight could show the other one how the thing
ought to be done?”

“Something like that. A bit far-fetched, of course; but so is the pun
on the word knight—and I’m sure we’re right about it.”

“Well,” demanded Eileen, eagerly. “What does it lead to? Do you see
what it means?”

Westenhanger made a gesture of negation.

“No. In itself it doesn’t mean anything to me. We’ll need to guess
again. I’m afraid I’ll have to think it over for a time. At present it
suggests nothing to me.”

Eileen’s face showed her disappointment.

“Oh, I thought we were just on the edge of finding out something. What
a nuisance.”

Westenhanger thoughtfully folded up his paper. Then he replaced the
chessmen in their box and put the box and chess-board back into their
proper places.

“Well, let’s go out and see if we can’t find something else to do,” he
suggested. “Sometimes a thing occurs to one easier if one doesn’t
think too hard about it. Shall we take out one of the cars for an hour
or two?”

They left the library and passed into the Corinthian’s Room.
Westenhanger’s eye was caught by the Chess-board on the pavement and
his face lighted up.

“I believe I’ve got it!” he exclaimed. “Didn’t Mr. Dangerfield tell us
that night, something about the pieces being found in position on that
Chess-board?”

Eileen recalled the scene.

“Yes,” she confirmed. “He said that after the duel they found the
document on his desk and the pieces in the same order on that big
Chess-board. You remember he suggested that it might be the end of the
game he and his friend had been playing.”

Westenhanger’s features showed the elation he felt.

“Well, I believe we’ve stumbled right on the solution. Our luck’s
holding, after all; for it was pure luck that I happened to look at
that Chess-board as we passed. I’d forgotten about the thing—or at
least I hadn’t thought about it in that connection. But when my eye
caught the board I remembered something else.”

He knelt down and scrutinised the corners of one or two squares.

“Yes, they are oil-holes right enough. I was sure they were, the first
time I saw them, but I couldn’t make out what they were there for.
They’re all stopped up with dirt. We’ll need a fine wire and a bottle
of oil. Probably the whole affair’s rusted up with age; for it can’t
have been working for years and years.”

Eileen’s eyes shone with excitement.

“You really think you’ve got to the bottom of it? Let’s go at once and
get the oil and the wire and whatever else you need. I do want to see
you clear the thing up. This last bit sounds exciting.”

“It may be all wrong, you know,” Westenhanger warned her. “Don’t
imagine we’re out of the wood yet.”

“What do you think you’re going to find out? The Dangerfield Secret?”

“If this turns up trump,” said Westenhanger, “you and I will know more
about the Dangerfield Secret than the Dangerfields themselves do. I’m
pretty sure of that, at any rate. But there’s an ‘if’ with a capital
‘I’ in it yet; so don’t expect too much. It’s quite on the cards that
we’re on a wild-goose chase with a mare’s nest at the end of it.”

“Well, do let’s get the things you need and start as soon as we can.”

Westenhanger had little difficulty in getting what he wanted. They
came back to the Corinthian’s Room and, with precautions against being
surprised, set to work to clear the oil-holes of the accumulated dirt.
After that, Westenhanger, with an oil-can, liberally dosed each
channel.

“There,” he said. “We’ll need to give the stuff time to ooze into the
bearings. Let’s go and fill in the time with something else.”

They played tennis for an hour and then came back to the Corinthian’s
Room. Westenhanger had refused to explain his purpose, and the girl
was on tenterhooks to see what he meant to do. Westenhanger took out
his paper, opened the cupboard containing the iron chessmen, and began
methodically to set them up in the positions marked in the
Corinthian’s diagram. In a few minutes he had the scheme completed.

“Now we come to the final stage,” he said. “We’ll play over the four
knight’s moves. I think that’s the key to the thing.”

With considerable difficulty he shifted the white knight from square
to square.

“One—Two—Three. Now for it—four!”

The heavy iron figure dropped into its final position—and nothing
happened! Westenhanger stared at the board in unconcealed
discomfiture, and Eileen’s face showed her disappointment.

“It hasn’t worked!” she exclaimed. “That’s hard lines, Conway.”

“No, it hasn’t worked,” he answered, in a tone of perplexity. “And yet
I feel absolutely sure that we’re on the right track. It all fits
together too neatly to be wrong. Those four moves ought to have
released some catch or other. I expected one of the Chess-board
squares to spring up, or something like that. But nothing’s happened.”

He lifted the iron pieces one by one and restored each to its proper
place in the cupboard.

“There’s some step we’ve missed, evidently. I wonder what it can be.”

Just as he closed the cupboard door, Cynthia came into the room.

“Oh, you’re here, Eileen? I’ve been hunting for you all over the
place. We want you, if Mr. Westenhanger can spare you just now.”

She asked Westenhanger’s permission with a glance; and he made a
gesture of release.

“I’ll think over it,” he said to Eileen. “Perhaps I may hit on
something.”

After the two girls had left the room he stood for a time staring at
the Chess-board; but it seemed to suggest nothing fresh to him. He
returned to the library, pulled out his copy of the Corinthian’s
document and fell to studying it once more. As he opened out the
paper, his eye was caught by the part of the inscription which
hitherto he had neglected:

    Matt. VI. 21; Luke XII. 34.

“That’s got to come into it somehow,” he admitted to himself. “But I
can’t see the relevancy as it stands. _For where the treasure lies,
there will your heart be also._ It sounds like the only straight tip
in the whole business—the key to the affair. But what the devil can it
mean, exactly? It’s very vague as it stands.”

Feeling sure that up to that point he had been on the right track, he
went over each link in his chain of thought; and then, in a flash, he
saw what he had previously missed.

“That’s it! Of course, the other text ought to have put me on the
track. He wasn’t so bemused after all, that old bird! A deuced good
mnemonic—once one has the key. Now it all depends on one point. I’d
better leave the old man alone. He’s getting a bit tired of questions.
I’ll get hold of Eric. He’s likely to know.”

Luck was in Westenhanger’s way that morning. He discovered Eric
Dangerfield sitting reading on one of the lawns, at no great distance
from the house. His ankle was still weak and kept him tethered within
a short radius.

Westenhanger did not plunge immediately into the subject which
interested him, though he had little fear of arousing any suspicion in
Eric’s mind. He was sure that at this time he had out-distanced the
Dangerfields completely, and was nearer the solution of their family
mystery than they themselves had ever been. Luck had stood him in good
stead.

At last he led the conversation round to the point.

“I suppose you’ve made very few changes in Friocksheim in the last
hundred years—electric light, and so on, of course; but a lot of
furniture seems good old stuff.”

Eric nodded.

“We’re a conservative lot,” he said.

“That’s a good bit of tapestry in the Corinthian’s Room. I suppose
it’s hung there for long enough?”

“About a century and a half, I should think. It’s taken down for
cleaning, of course; but it’s never been shifted out of the Room since
it came here. It fits the wall space exactly; and there’s no point in
hanging it in a fresh place.”

“You’ve got one or two pretty good pictures, too. I like the Dutch one
in your uncle’s study.”

“Girl trying on jewels? It’s not at all bad.”

“What is it? Seventeenth century? I know next to nothing about these
things.”

Eric professed ignorance.

“You’ve come to the wrong shop. I know as little about these things as
you do yourself. Try my uncle. He’s got a turn for them; and he can
tell you the history of most of them.”

Westenhanger had secured the information he needed. He changed the
subject, and, very shortly afterwards, he left Eric to his book.

“Now,” he said to himself, as he walked back to the house, “is that
absolutely everything linked up at last? I can’t afford to have
another fiasco through overlooking things. Let’s see. The Latin text?
Right! Then the chess problem? Right, also. Then the two English
texts? O.K. now, I think.” He went back to the Corinthian’s Room and
stood for a few seconds before the tapestry of Diana’s hunting.

“Yes,” he concluded, “I think that’s all right also. That’s all, isn’t
it? No, it isn’t! I’d forgotten that leather thing. The chances are it
has nothing to do with the affair; but one ought to give it a trial.”

He sat down and filled his pipe while he speculated.

“I’m pretty sure it isn’t a washer, though that’s what one might have
expected it to be. Now what on earth does one use a leather disc of
that size for, unless it’s in connection with machinery. And the old
Corinthian was a bit of an inventor—more than a dabbler in mechanics,
if I’m on the right track. And yet from the look of the thing I’m
almost certain it’s got no normal use in a machine. The twine through
it proves that almost conclusively. Hold on, though! It might be a
valve of sorts. That might be it. But why leave a valve-piece along
with the document? That must be wrong.”

He thought over the matter without evolving anything which seemed to
throw light on the problem. At last he took up a fresh line.

“Old Rollo suggested that it was a toy that the old Corinthian had
made for his kiddie. But then, why leave it along with the document?
That seems a silly sort of thing to do. And from the look of the
leather, the thing had been used in some way. I don’t know much about
leather; but the way that disc was warped. . . . It must have been
wetted and allowed to dry, or something. That would crinkle it.”

Then a final flash of illumination lit up the whole problem in his
mind. He laughed partly at himself and partly at the simplicity of the
solution.

“Why, of course, it’s a kid’s toy. I’ve played with the same sort of
thing myself. And that’s what he used it for. He was a bright old
bird, right enough. No wonder we got no result with the Chess-board.”

He stepped into the Corinthian’s Room, drew aside the tapestry, and
examined the panelling behind it. To the ordinary eye it showed
nothing; but Westenhanger seemed satisfied with what he saw. He let
the tapestry fall into place again.

“Now let’s see! Nothing doing to-day, that’s certain. I’ll have to
wait till to-morrow before I can try it out. But I’m dead sure of it
this time. It’s no wonder the Dangerfields never got near the thing.
I’d never have been near it myself if it hadn’t been for that talk
with Eileen. Pure luck. No credit to any of us.”

He turned away from the hanging and consulted his watch.

“Just time, if I take the car down. The Frogsholme cobbler first of
all; and then a shop where I can get some long needles. That fits me
out. And to-morrow I’ll give old Rollo the surprise of his life. The
bottom will be out of the Dangerfield Secret! What a relief for the
old man!”



Chapter XIV

On the following afternoon, having completed all his arrangements,
Westenhanger ushered Rollo Dangerfield and Eileen into the
Corinthian’s Room.

“Mind if I lock the door for a short time?” he asked, turning to his
host. “I’d rather not be interrupted by anyone in the middle of this
affair. You’ll agree with me when you’ve seen what I have to show
you.”

Old Rollo’s face showed more than a trace of suspicion. Westenhanger
had vouchsafed no information about his project; and the old man
evidently felt mistrustful. However, he nodded his consent and waited
while Westenhanger turned the key in the lock.

“What’s the glass of water for?” Eileen demanded, pointing to a
tumbler which Westenhanger had in his hand.

“You’ll see before long,” he assured her, putting the glass down on a
table. “I think we’ll take things one at a time.”

Rollo seemed to think that he had been kept in the dark long enough.

“May I ask why you have brought us here?”

Westenhanger noticed the old man’s glance at Eileen as he spoke, so he
resolved to put matters on a plain footing at once.

“Miss Cressage knows almost as much about this matter as I do myself.
Between us, we seem to have hit upon something which you ought to know
at once. Miss Cressage, I may say, gave me the key to the mystery.
Without her help I don’t think I’d have hit on the thing at all.”

At the word “mystery,” a shadow gathered on Rollo’s face. He glanced
from the engineer to Eileen as though trying to read their thoughts.
Westenhanger hastened to reassure him.

“When you’ve heard the whole story, Mr. Dangerfield, I think you’ll
agree with me that Miss Cressage has done you a very great service.”

The old man again scanned Westenhanger’s face keenly, before making
any reply. Evidently his scrutiny satisfied him; for the distrust
slowly faded out of his expression and he turned to Eileen with a
faint sketch of a bow, as though making acknowledgment and amends.

“I am entirely in your hands,” he said. “It’s quite clear that you
have been acting for the best.”

Eileen broke in as soon as he had finished.

“You mustn’t take what Mr. Westenhanger says as being strictly
accurate. I really did very little to help. In fact, I’m as much in
the dark as you are, just now, Mr. Dangerfield.”

Westenhanger intervened.

“I think it will be best to take the thing step by step and let you
see how we reached the kernel of the affair. You’ve been doing your
grandfather an injustice, all these years, Mr. Dangerfield. He was a
better man than you gave him credit for. I’ve seen enough to know
that. And I think you’ll find that the Corinthian’s Secret is more
important than the Dangerfield Secret.”

The old man winced a little at Westenhanger’s words; but he refrained
from comment.

“Now, to start with, would you mind letting me have the Corinthian’s
document and the leather disc from the safe? We may as well work with
the originals, as far as possible.”

Rollo stepped slowly across the room, unlocked the safe, and took out
of it the two required articles which he handed over to Westenhanger
in silence.

“I think we’ll sit down,” said the engineer. “It’s going to take a
little while to explain the matter.”

He indicated three seats and brought a small table over, so that they
could all see the document which he placed on it.

“In the first place,” he began, “you once told us that your
grandfather had mechanical leanings—he’d invented some kind of geared
bicycle. That didn’t strike me at the time, particularly; but as it
came back to some purpose later on, I mention it first. On the same
evening, by pure chance, I happened to notice these little holes at
the corners of the squares of the Chess-board on the pavement here.
These things, I mean.”

He rose and pointed out one or two of them.

“When you told us that the Talisman was safe, I must confess I thought
of a man-trap. The holes in the pavement suggested some kind of
machinery needing lubrication; and I had some notion of a trap-door
which would open when the Talisman was touched and so trap a thief.
That was an entirely mistaken idea, as you told us yourself. Still, at
the back of my mind I had connected these oil-holes with the presence
of some machinery or other and with the mechanical tastes of your
grandfather.”

The distrust had passed completely away from Rollo’s face. He was now
listening with obvious eagerness to Westenhanger’s explanation.

“The next thing was, of course, your showing us these things from the
safe. They were quite meaningless to me then.”

He lifted them lightly and put them back on the table.

“The next bit’s hard to account for. Somehow I got a feeling that the
document was the key to some problem or other, and I asked you to let
me copy it. It was just an impulse. I really can’t say what I expected
to do with it. It certainly wasn’t mere vulgar curiosity to dig out
the Dangerfield Secret.”

Again a flicker of distrust crossed Rollo’s face. Westenhanger saw it.

“You can take it from me now, Mr. Dangerfield, that the Dangerfield
Secret is of no importance whatever from to-day onwards. Least of all
to you personally. Make your mind quite easy on that score.”

Rollo nodded; but quite evidently he was not altogether relieved from
anxiety. Eileen’s face showed that she was puzzled by Westenhanger’s
words, but she refrained from asking any question.

“We’ll take the document next,” Westenhanger continued, picking it up
from the table as he spoke. “You know its contents, two texts and a
chess-position. The chess-position is a dud affair. There’s a mate in
one move staring one in the face as soon as one looks at it. Obviously
the thing isn’t a problem, and no one would trouble to write down an
end-game so simple as this. I made nothing of it.”

He looked across at the old man. Rollo’s face had taken on its old
mask of inscrutability. Quite evidently he could not see whither all
this was leading.

“I come now to Miss Cressage’s part in the affair,” Westenhanger
proceeded. “So far as I was concerned there was nothing confidential
in the matter. You hadn’t pledged me to secrecy—because you had told
me nothing. Still, before speaking to Miss Cressage about it, I asked
her to promise she would say nothing. We know that she can keep her
promises.”

Rollo’s glance at the girl made it quite clear that he had full
confidence in her.

“Between us,” Westenhanger went on, “we hit on the key to the first
text. _Nox nocti_—night unto night. Spell the word with a K, and you
get Knight—the chess-piece.”

Old Dangerfield sat up sharply.

“Do you know, Mr. Westenhanger, two generations of us have puzzled
over that scrawl, and not one of us saw it. I congratulate you on your
acuteness, both of you. That was very clever indeed.”

“Just a chance,” Westenhanger had to admit. “It’s a thing one could
only hit upon in the course of talk, and even then it would be only by
accident.”

Rollo’s indifference had slipped from him completely.

“And next?” he demanded.

“I think we’ll set up the position on the big Chess-board before we go
any further,” Westenhanger suggested. “I have a reason for that, as
you’ll see.”

He went to the case holding the chessmen and set up the pieces one by
one on the pavement squares. Then he returned to his seat and took up
the document again.

“You see two white knights? Knight unto knight sheweth knowledge. That
means, as I read it, that one knight can do something which the other
knight can’t do. Very little examination shows what that thing is—it’s
an unaided mate in four moves. Thus.”

He moved the one white knight successively from square to square until
it reached the mating position on Queen’s Seventh. Eileen watched
eagerly, expecting that this time something would happen, but she
could detect nothing whatever. Westenhanger had noticed her attitude.
He looked across the table at her with a smile.

“That’s what you saw me do yesterday. Now I’ll tell you what I was
looking for.”

He turned to Rollo.

“You know that each of these pieces has a long spike on its base which
slides into the holes in the Chess-board? On the surface it looks as
if that had been designed merely to keep the pieces from being knocked
over by anyone who has to walk among them in order to shift them from
square to square. But I had at the back of my mind the idea of the old
Corinthian as a man with a mechanical turn, and I put that idea
alongside the notion of the spikes and the sequence of four fixed
moves by the white knight. And so I reached the idea of . . .”

He looked interrogatively at his hearers, but neither of them had
caught his meaning.

“Of a combination lock!” he concluded, after a pause. “Your
grandfather was more of a mechanic than you gave him credit for. As I
understand the machine—of course, this is only guess-work—under each
hole in the four squares of the knight’s moves there lies the end of a
lever. When you drop the knight into its place on the square, the
spike depresses the lever. The whole secret of the thing is that the
four levers must be depressed in that particular sequence. That guards
against the lock being sprung in the course of normal play. The
chances against that combination are considerable; and I expect some
of the other pieces also depress lock-levers, so that it’s almost
impossible that the thing should be unlocked by a chance game. In
fact, the whole affair is simply a clumsy forerunner of the ordinary
dial lock on good safes.”

“Yes, but it hasn’t opened!” commented Eileen.

“It _has_ unlocked something, though,” Westenhanger retorted. “That
was what puzzled me yesterday when apparently nothing happened after
I’d played the moves. But the Corinthian was taking no chances. The
Chess-board is the lock, but the thing it secures is somewhere else.”

“That sounds nonsense to me,” Eileen said, decidedly.

Westenhanger smiled with a touch of friendly maliciousness.

“We’ve still two things which we haven’t used. This is where I went
wrong yesterday, Eileen,” he interjected. “There’s another text, and
there’s the leather disc. Take the text first of all. _Where your
treasure is, there will your heart be also._ Remember the pun in the
first case? There’s another one here. I didn’t spot it for a while.”

He challenged Eileen’s ingenuity with a look across the table and left
her to puzzle the thing out for herself.

“Not see it? I’ll give you a clue. ‘As pants the hart for cooling
streams . . .’”

He caught her eye and his glance led her gaze round the room till it
came to the tapestry of Diana’s hunting.

“Oh, now I see!” she cried. “You mean there’s something hidden behind
that stag—the hart—in the arras!”

Westenhanger assented with a nod.

Rollo Dangerfield had maintained his serenity up to this point; but
evidently he now felt the strain.

“Mr. Westenhanger,” he said. “You’re not leading me on to a
disappointment? I’ve guessed at something behind all this. Please do
not keep me in suspense.”

Westenhanger felt ashamed of the comedy he was playing. He had not
thought of how it must appear to the man most concerned. At once, in
response to old Rollo’s rather pathetic query, he dropped the pretence
that the issue was still unknown.

“I’m very sorry, Mr. Dangerfield. In trying to make it interesting I’m
afraid I forgot that you might be anxious about the end of the
business—afraid it was all going to peter out in an empty treasury.
I’ve only been making believe that I’m working this out step by step
as we go along. Of course I’ve done it all once before and found the
real thing I was looking for.”

Old Rollo’s old-fashioned courtesy returned to him.

“I am very sorry to have interrupted you,” he said. “Please go on with
your story. I am quite ready to wait for the end when it comes.”

He settled himself in his chair, evidently restraining all signs of
impatience. Westenhanger continued.

“You’ll have no cause to regret our intrusion into your affairs, Mr.
Dangerfield. I can promise you that. I’ll go on. With this needle I
can prick through the arras and fix the exact position of the
hiding-place behind the cloth. You see the stag’s very small; anywhere
near the centre of the body will do. I put the needle clean through
and leave it sticking in the panel behind, to mark the place.”

He suited the action to the word, then he lifted the tapestry and
disclosed the panelled surface.

“Nothing visible in the way of a handle, you see?” he pointed out.
“The panelling’s quite smooth.”

He dropped the tapestry into place again and came back to the table.

“Now this leather disc,” he picked it up as he spoke. “You suggested
to us that it might be a child’s toy. That was what eventually put me
on the track. It _is_ a child’s toy. I’ve played with one like it when
I was a child myself, though I haven’t seen one for years now.
Possibly the modern child doesn’t use things of that sort. But in my
young days they used to call them ‘suckers.’ Here’s one in its normal
state.”

He drew from his pocket a disc of leather with a loop of twine
attached, exactly like the Corinthian relic, except that
Westenhanger’s leather was soft and moist.

“I’ll show you how it works.”

He dipped it for a moment into the glass of water, then placed it flat
on the table with the twine loop on the upper side.

“Now I squeeze it into contact with the table, so as to exclude all
air between it and the wooden surface. The water acts as a seal.
That’s right. Now I pull vertically upwards on the twine. You see the
centre of the disc is pulled up by the twine. That makes a vacuum
between the leather and the table; and the pressure of the atmosphere
pins the ‘sucker’ to the wood. The harder you pull, the faster it
sticks. It’s exactly the way a limpet sticks to a rock; and you know
how tight that clings. With a thing of this size, I could lift an
ordinary paving stone out of its bed. We used to pull up quite big
stones with them when I was a kiddie.”

By levering the ‘sucker’ adroitly he loosened it from the table, just
as a limpet is slid off its bed by a side-thrust.

“I think the rest’s obvious. The Corinthian wanted some means of
pulling out that particular panel without leaving any mark or
attaching a handle. He used this sucker for the purpose. I’ll show
you.”

He went over to the arras, lifted it, and attached his leather disc at
the point where the needle had been. A slow, steady pull on the twine
completed the work, and a large piece of the panel came forward,
evidently the end of a drawer fitting back into the wall of the room.

“Your grandfather’s safe deposit!” said Westenhanger.

As Rollo came forward, the engineer dipped his hand into the drawer.

“Some loose things on top. Will you take them, please? Let’s see. A
diamond pendant. . . . A jewelled collar, isn’t it . . . ? And
this. . . . Here’s something else. . . . There are one or two more, I
think, further back in the drawer.”

He stretched his arm into the cavity, felt about for a few moments,
then grasped something. His voice changed as he turned round with it
in his hand.

“The _real_ Talisman, Mr. Dangerfield!”



Chapter XV

Eileen Cressage watched the old man eagerly stretch out his hand and
take the armlet from Westenhanger’s fingers.

“What do you mean, Conway?” she exclaimed. “The _real_ Talisman? Why,
you saw the real Talisman put into that safe over yonder not three
days ago by Mr. Dangerfield himself. How do you come to have it here?”

For once, Rollo Dangerfield was so moved as to forget his courtesy.

“Is it the real thing?” he asked Westenhanger, with anxiety obvious in
his tone.

The engineer reassured him.

“I don’t profess to be an expert; but I can tell the difference
between paste and the genuine article. These diamonds are the real
thing.”

Rollo carried the armlet across to the window and examined it
minutely. Eileen followed him, still mystified by the turn of events,
though the explanation was beginning to shape itself in her mind.

“The end of the Dangerfield Secret, isn’t it?” asked Westenhanger,
joining them. “I was pretty sure of my ground when I told you that the
Secret had ceased to be of any importance now.”

Rollo Dangerfield’s lapse into unintentional brusqueness had been only
a momentary one, under the stress of strong emotion. Already he had
recovered his balance.

“You can perhaps understand something of what this means to me, Mr.
Westenhanger, even if you don’t guess the whole story. It’s sometimes
difficult to find words for what one has to say. I wish to thank
you—and you also, Miss Cressage—for this. You can have no idea of the
load which you have taken off my shoulders. You have cleared away the
shams, and I can look people in the face again, unashamed. It’s
useless to put these things into words. I can’t do it as I would like
to do. But at least I can tell you, Miss Cressage, something of the
Dangerfield story which will give you an idea of what this has meant
to us.”

He made a gesture inviting them to sit down again. Eileen seated
herself, but Westenhanger paused for a moment.

“I think we’d better shut this thing up before we go any further.”

He indicated the still open drawer in the panelling.

“Just wait a moment until I empty it completely.”

He put his hand into the recess and withdrew several other pieces of
jewellery which he added to the shining heap on the table. Then he
closed the drawer, dropped the arras, and came back to the
Chess-board.

“You remember you told us that after the Corinthian’s death they found
the pieces on this board in the position shown on the document? It’s
pretty obvious what was in his mind. He knew that he might be killed
in a few minutes. Probably he mistrusted his servants and was afraid
to leave family jewellery at their mercy. So he opened the secret
recess, tumbled the jewels into it—the Talisman was in it already—and
then he closed his combination lock . . . thus.”

Westenhanger walked on to the Chessboard and lifted the white knight
from Queen’s Seventh.

“One reverses the four moves, so, bringing the knight back to its
starting-point on the knight’s square.”

He suited the action to the word, carrying out the four operations in
the reverse order.

“Now the drawer is locked,” he explained. “That’s what the Corinthian
did, just before he went out to his duel. And that’s why they found
the Chess-board in this state. Probably he hadn’t time enough to put
the pieces away in the cupboard, so he left them standing as they
were. They gave nothing away.”

He picked up the document, the wrinkled leather disc, and his own
“sucker”; and handed them across the table.

“That finishes our part, Mr. Dangerfield. Now, perhaps, you’ll tell us
what you wish us to hear.”

Rollo Dangerfield’s face had regained its accustomed serenity. The
tinge of suspicion had vanished completely and was replaced by a
trustful expression, as he looked at his two guests. He turned first
to Eileen.

“I am sorry you have been kept waiting for an answer to your question,
Miss Cressage. It was my fault. You will forgive an old man’s
impatience when I tell you that you and Mr. Westenhanger have cleared
up something which has hung over fifty years of my life. And there are
other reasons, too, as you will hear.”

Eileen had no need to say anything. Her face told Rollo that she had
not been offended.

“You startled me not long ago, Mr. Westenhanger,” their host went on,
“by asking me if the Dangerfield Secret was not just three generations
old. If that was a mere guess it was a very good one. Actually, what
has been called the Dangerfield Secret originated in my father’s day;
and since it has been passed on to Eric it has lasted through three
generations. And now it passes away, thanks to you young people.”

He paused for a moment before speaking again.

“You must bear in mind that some of this is conjecture, and that I am
trying to fit it together so as to take in the facts which have come
to light this afternoon. Before I came into this room I had not the
key to the problem; and I have hardly had time to fit the new links
into the chain neatly. But it seems evident to me that even in my
grandfather’s day, there was a Talisman and a replica; and that the
replica was kept under the tinted bell to conceal the fact that the
stones were false. From your inferences, Mr. Westenhanger, it seems
clear that he devised this particular hiding-place for the real
Talisman.

“Now take the state of affairs on the morning of my grandfather’s
death. He knew the risk he ran—his opponent was a noted duellist; and
he had no one at hand whom he could trust. Probably, as you suggested,
he collected the more valuable family jewels and placed them with the
real Talisman for safety’s sake. We did him an injustice when we
assumed that he had already sold them to pay his gambling debts.

“I don’t care to speculate on his mental condition at that moment.
Quite probably, after a night’s carousing he was not clear-headed. He
jotted down the memory-help he used himself as a clue to the hiding
place, and very probably he failed to realise that it was no real help
to anyone but himself. Then he went out—and that was the end.”

With quite unconscious dramatic effect the old man paused in his
narrative and sat for some instants in silence. When he spoke again it
was in a lighter tone.

“And now I come to a fresh character. I never knew him, but I have
been trying to reconstruct him in my mind from many things which were
told to me about him. He was the solicitor for the Dangerfield estate
at the time my Corinthian grandfather died.

“Imagine his position, Miss Cressage. He takes over the administration
of the estate—you remember that my father was a mere child then—and he
finds it terribly encumbered with the debts which had accumulated in
my grandfather’s day, a load of liabilities which even a generation
failed to clear away. Credit was essential if the ship was to be kept
afloat at all. And the biggest asset of the estate was the Dangerfield
Talisman. So long as that remained, no one could suppose that things
were seriously involved, and with care, he could just pilot us
through. Without that palladium, the creditors would have come down at
once and the game would have been up. Friocksheim would have come to
the hammer. Everything would have gone down in the crash. And in the
midst of all his anxiety he learned that the Talisman was a sham of
gilded lead and spurious stones!”

Rollo broke off his narrative, leaving time for them to appreciate the
position.

“I have seen the document in his own handwriting,” he continued,
“which gives an account of the affair. He had taken the Talisman from
under the bell and asked a jeweller what it would cost to make a
replica. He thought the thing should be put in safety; and it seems
that he, too, had hit on the idea of substituting a counterfeit for
the real thing, the notion of a stalking-horse which I explained to
you once before, Mr. Westenhanger. And you can guess his consternation
when he learned from the jeweller that the thing was worth no more
than a few pounds. The whole mainstay of his scheme for keeping the
Dangerfield credit secure, now turned out to be worthless. There was
no other easily-vended article—all the valuable jewellery had
vanished, sold to pay the Corinthian’s debts, as we have wrongly
believed until to-day.

“He had to come to a decision. Rightly or wrongly, he chose his
course. He started the Dangerfield Secret as we have known it. He
quieted any suspicions of the jeweller by ordering ‘a second replica.’
And he embarked on a career of concealment. It was safe enough. The
Corinthian had had the armlet valued out of curiosity. Everyone knew
it was worth £50,000. No one had any reason to suppose that it had
gone astray. And with that sham asset behind him to strengthen
confidence, he pulled the estate out of its immediate difficulties. I
have no right to criticise him. He worked according to his lights,
with the sole purpose of handing over Friocksheim to my father when he
came of age.”

It was plain enough from the old man’s tone that he himself might have
chosen the same course had the alternatives been offered.

“We have paid dearly enough for his decision,” Rollo went on. “He
involved us all in his machinations, even those of us who were born
long after he died. When my father came of age, the old solicitor laid
the whole case before him. The estate was still in a shaky state, and
an involuntary liquidation would have left us insolvent. More, in a
forced sale we could not have hoped to pay our creditors in full. We’d
have been defaulters and real losses would have been incurred by
innocent people. On the other side, by keeping up the estate’s credit,
we gained time enough to pay in full, eventually—to be honest, in
fact—provided that the Talisman deception could be kept in being. It
was merely a choice, you see, between two forms of dishonesty; but the
one alternative would hurt other people, whilst the second course laid
a burden on ourselves alone. My father chose the second path. I cannot
say that in his position, I would have done otherwise myself.”

His face took on a bitter cast.

“That was the beginning of the Dangerfield Secret—the trickery of the
spurious Talisman. Can you wonder that I described it to you, once, as
a memorial of lying and deceit? How do you suppose I felt, being
driven to lie to my own guests in my own house every time I was asked
to show it to anyone? The famous Dangerfield Talisman!”

He moved in his chair, almost as though he wished to free himself from
some physical contamination.

“And all the time, we were in the toils which that old man had wrapped
around us a century ago. How could we shake free from that web of
deception? We still need the asset—at least we needed it yesterday.
And to let the thing leak out would be to put a black mark on my
father’s name. You know what people would say about the part we have
played. There was no getting clear. We had to go on as we had begun.”

He glanced at his two guests as though he feared that he had wearied
them by a long story; but their expressions encouraged him to continue
to the end.

“People often wonder why we do not insure a thing of such immense
value. How could we insure it? It would need to be valued—and the game
would be up! So we have been forced into that second series of
deceptions—the return of the Talisman after it has been stolen. We
have to keep a series of replicas; and put out a fresh one every time
there is a theft. We have to play that silly game of pretending we
believe in an old legend—another lie—because we dare not call in the
police if the thing vanishes, and because we dare not admit that we
have lost it.”

Rollo’s voice became gloomier still.

“And in front of us, always, there was the risk of an inevitable
exposure. We had to avoid the Government valuers in the matter of
Death Duties. We could do that only by transferring the Talisman from
hand to hand. My father made it over to me when I was twenty-one; I
gave it to Eric when he came of age. It has never been subject to
Death Duties yet. But there is always the chance of accident. If Eric
died before me the whole thing would have been exposed when they came
to value his estate. That possible Nemesis has been imminent for the
holders of the Talisman.”

He seemed to brood for a time on his retrospect. When he spoke again,
both his voice and manner had altered. It was as if at last he had
emerged from the shadows.

“And now, after a century of deceit, we’ve come out into the light
again, thanks to you both! And to think that the Talisman was here all
the time, within the walls of Friocksheim. Of course we had puzzled
over the Corinthian’s cypher; but we’d never taken it seriously,
because we believed all along that he had sold the armlet and the
jewellery. It never occurred to any of us that the thing was within
our grasp, under our very roof. Even his own man of affairs believed
that, and it never crossed our minds that anything else could have
happened.”

“I think it was very natural,” said Eileen.

Westenhanger made no comment. He had been touched, like the girl, by
the story of the Dangerfield Secret as it was now revealed. By his
candid narrative old Rollo had enlisted their sympathy without having
directly besought it from them; and they could understand the feelings
which his position had stirred in him through fifty long years.

“No wonder he often looked as if he’d grown sick of life,” was the
younger man’s unspoken comment.

“Well, it’s all right now, isn’t it?” he said aloud. “The Talisman’s
come back for the last time.”

Eileen broke in, before the old man could reply.

“You’ve no idea how glad I am that we are able to help, Mr.
Dangerfield. Less than a week ago, I felt that Friocksheim was a place
I’d never want to visit again; it had such miserable associations in
my mind, in more ways than one. But now, somehow, it’s all different.
We can all be happy here; there’s nothing hanging over any of us any
more. You understand, don’t you?”

Rollo Dangerfield looked at her with something like affection showing
in his eyes.

“Who could understand better than I do? It’s like waking out of a
nightmare to find the sun shining in through the window. And we owe
our awakening to you and Mr. Westenhanger. You don’t imagine I
under-rate that, surely? I dare say you think you understand what this
means for me; perhaps you have some faint conception. But unless you
had actually gone through it yourselves you couldn’t come near the
real thing. It’s lasted fifty years, and that’s only a few years less
than your two lives put together. And now—daylight! I shall be glad to
have a year or two of decent life at the end of it all.”

Westenhanger saw something in the old man’s eyes which made him
interpose with a fresh subject.

“And what about the Talisman now, Mr. Dangerfield? Will you use the
Corinthian’s safe deposit still? It’s lain there safely enough all
these years. That’s why I locked the door—so that no one should
blunder in and notice the hiding-place when it was open. I thought you
might want it again.”

“The Talisman?” repeated Rollo. “Do you know, I could almost find it
in my heart to sell the Talisman—give Wraxall his desire, after all.
If I had a decent excuse for doing it, I think I would. I’ve hated it
for years. But I suppose we must keep it, now that it’s come into our
hands again. I want no more possible regrets, and one might regret
having let it go, after these centuries. We don’t need to sell it;
there are other things to sell.”

He bent over the table and examined the jewellery which had come from
the Corinthian’s hiding-place. After a careful scrutiny he picked up
the diamond pendant and turned to Eileen.

“You talked about your memories of Friocksheim, Miss Cressage, and,
believe me, I was touched by what you said. Now I should like you to
have something which will always remind you of the old place in that
aspect.”

He offered her the glittering gems, and, when she made a gesture of
refusal, he continued as though he had not noticed it.

“I know you don’t wear jewellery, so in its present form it would
hardly serve. But this central stone would set well in a ring. Get it
taken out; and do as you please with the rest—sell them, if you
choose. There’s no sentiment in the matter; for I intend to sell the
rest of the things here and use the money to clear our feet at last.
So you are free to follow that good example if you please.”

He saw her expression and tried a different argument.

“If you refuse, I shall feel that you think I have been trying to pay
you for your help—and that you flung the payment back. Nobody could
find a real payment for what you and Mr. Westenhanger have done. This
isn’t payment, Miss Cressage. It’s a thank-offering, if you care to
put it in that way. I still hope you won’t refuse.”

Eileen saw the pain in the old man’s eyes.

“I ought to refuse,” she said, hesitatingly.

Then, after another look at Rollo’s face, she added:

“But I can understand how you feel. I’ll take your gift, though it’s
far too valuable. And I’ll do with it just as you wish. We needn’t
pretend to misunderstand each other, need we? I’ll sell some of the
stones and clear my own feet, just as you’re going to clear yours. And
I’ll wear the ring to remind me of Friocksheim, though I won’t need it
for that.”

She took the pendant and examined it, thoughtfully.

“It’s a lovely thing . . . I feel rather tongue-tied, Mr.
Dangerfield,” she confessed with a smile.

“I’m glad to hear that,” he smiled in response. “You’ll understand
better now, how I felt myself not many minutes ago.”

And with that he brushed her thanks aside.

“There’s one thing you can do, Miss Cressage. Come back often to
Friocksheim. I shall look forward to your coming. You’re one of us,
now, and not merely a visitor; for you know more about our affairs
than some of our family ever knew. You, too, Westenhanger. We’re
going to need young people about the place, since we shall be losing
Helga. . . .”

Suddenly his face changed. A smile came over it, the first really
care-free smile that had crossed it in fifty years. The touch of
wistfulness had vanished—it was the natural Rollo coming out at last
after the long suppression.

“Helga’s birthday falls next week. She will be twenty-five—the age
when our girls are told the Dangerfield Secret. What a disappointment
for her when she learns that now there is no Secret at all!”


The End



Transcriber’s Notes

This transcription follows the text of the edition published by
Little, Brown, and Company in February, 1927. However, the following
alterations have been made to correct what are believed to be
unambiguous errors in the text:

 * “semed” has been changed to “seemed” (Chapter VII);
 * “Westerhanger” has been changed to “Westenhanger” (Chapter X);
 * “generaations” has been changed to “generations” (Chapter XIV).

All other seeming errors have been allowed to stand. (Note in
particular that the name of the jewellery firm has not been
regularized, as it is rendered variously as Starbeck, Starbeck’s, and
Starbecks, with no clear preference of one use over another.)





*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DANGERFIELD TALISMAN ***


    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™

Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.